Play | Key Line | Modern Text | Original Text |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.i.9 | would stir it up where it wanted, rather than lack it | would stirre it vp where it wanted rather then lack it |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.i.51 | affect a sorrow than to have't. | affect a sorrow, then to haue------ |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.i.64 | Rather in power than use, and keep thy friend | Rather in power then vse: and keepe thy friend |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.i.80 | Than those I shed for him. What was he like? | Then those I shed for him. What was he like? |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.i.157 | your porridge than in your cheek; and your virginity, | your Porredge, then in your cheeke: and your virginity, |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.ii.20 | Frank nature, rather curious than in haste, | Franke Nature rather curious then in hast |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.ii.49 | Lies richer in your thoughts than on his tomb; | Lies richer in your thoughts, then on his tombe: |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.iii.5 | past endeavours, for then we wound our modesty, and | past endeuours, for then we wound our Modestie, and |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.iii.38 | Thy marriage, sooner than thy wickedness. | Thy marriage sooner then thy wickednesse. |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.iii.74 | And gave this sentence then: | And gaue this sentence then, |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.iii.100 | owing her than is paid, and more shall be paid her than | owing her then is paid, and more shall be paid her then |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.iii.102 | Madam, I was very late more near her than I | Madam, I was verie late more neere her then I |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.iii.130 | Such were our faults, or then we thought them none. | Such were our faults, or then we thought them none, |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.iii.159 | I care no more for than I do for heaven, | I care no more for, then I doe for heauen, |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.iii.171 | But tell me then, 'tis so; for, look, thy cheeks | But tell me then 'tis so, for looke, thy cheekes |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.iii.186.2 | Then, I confess, | Then I confesse |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.iii.208 | Was both herself and love – O then, give pity | Was both her selfe and loue, O then giue pittie |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.iii.222 | More than they were in note. Amongst the rest | More then they were in note: Amongst the rest, |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.iii.230.1 | Haply been absent then. | Happily beene absent then. |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.iii.238 | More than my father's skill, which was the greatest | More then my Fathers skill, which was the great'st |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.i.63 | Then here's a man stands that has brought his pardon. | Then heres a man stands that has brought his pardon, |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.i.85 | Than I dare blame my weakness. Will you see her, | Then I dare blame my weakenesse: will you see her? |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.i.109 | Safer than mine own two, more dear; I have so, | Safer then mine owne two: more deare I haue so, |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.i.125 | My duty then shall pay me for my pains. | My dutie then shall pay me for my paines: |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.i.193 | Then shalt thou give me with thy kingly hand | Then shalt thou giue me with thy kingly hand |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.iii.35 | use to be made than alone the recovery of the King, as | vse to be made, then alone the recou'ry of the king, as |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.iii.59 | My mouth no more were broken than these boys', | My mouth no more were broken then these boyes, |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.iii.77 | I had rather be in this choice than throw ames-ace | I had rather be in this choise, then throw / Ames-ace |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.iii.104 | Why, then, young Bertram, take her, she's thy wife. | Why then young Bertram take her shee's thy wife. |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.iii.136 | Than our foregoers. The mere word's a slave, | Then our fore-goers: the meere words, a slaue |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.iii.238 | pity of his age than I would have of – I'll beat him an if | pittie of his age then I would haue of------ Ile beate him, and if |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.iii.260 | honourable personages than the commission of your | honourable personages, then the Commission of your |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.iii.263 | Good, very good, it is so then. Good, very | Good, very good, it is so then: good, very |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.v.5 | Then my dial goes not true: I took this lark for a | Then my Diall goes not true, I tooke this Larke for a |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.v.9 | I have then sinned against his experience and | I haue then sinn'd against his experience, and |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.v.38 | it you'll run again rather than suffer question for your | it you'le runne againe, rather then suffer question for your |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.v.47 | you than you have or will to deserve at my hand, but we | you, then you haue or will to deserue at my hand, but we |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.v.65 | And rather muse than ask why I entreat you; | And rather muse then aske why I intreate you, |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.v.66 | For my respects are better than they seem, | For my respects are better then they seeme, |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.v.68 | Greater than shows itself at the first view | Greater then shewes it selfe at the first view, |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW III.ii.58 | that I am father to, then call me husband; but in such a | that I am father too, then call me husband: but in such a |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW III.ii.59 | ‘ then ’ I write a ‘ never.’ | (then) I write a Neuer. |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW III.ii.102 | Then hast thou all again. Poor lord, is't I | Then hast thou all againe: poore Lord, is't I |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW III.iii.6.2 | Then go thou forth, | Then go thou forth, |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW III.vi.17 | None better than to let him fetch off his | None better then to let him fetch off his |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW III.vi.79 | No more than a fish loves water. Is not this a | No more then a fish loues water. Is not this a |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW III.vi.83 | than to do't. | then to doo't. |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW III.vii.10 | Is so from word to word, and then you cannot, | Is so from word to word: and then you cannot |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW III.vii.30 | You see it lawful then. It is no more | You see it lawfull then, it is no more, |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW III.vii.43.2 | Why then tonight | Why then to night |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW IV.i.22 | two hours in a sleep, and then to return and swear the | two houres in a sleepe, and then to returne & swear the |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW IV.i.94 | Till then I'll keep him dark and safely locked. | Till then Ile keepe him darke and safely lockt. |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW IV.ii.11.1 | She then was honest. | She then was honest. |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW IV.ii.24 | But take the highest to witness. Then, pray you, tell me: | But take the high'st to witnesse: then pray you tell me, |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW IV.ii.36 | Who then recovers. Say thou art mine, and ever | Who then recouers. Say thou art mine, and euer |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW IV.ii.64 | Adieu till then; then, fail not. You have won | Adieu till then, then faile not: you haue wonne |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW IV.iii.26 | trumpeters of our unlawful intents? We shall not then | Trumpeters of our vnlawfull intents? We shall not then |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW IV.iii.40 | What will Count Rossillion do then? Will | What will Count Rossilliondo then? Will |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW IV.iii.79 | They shall be no more than needful there, | They shall bee no more then needfull there, |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW IV.iii.80 | if they were more than they can commend. | if they were more then they can commend. |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW IV.iii.246 | not keeping of oaths; in breaking 'em he is stronger than | not keeping of oaths, in breaking em he is stronger then |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW IV.v.6 | King than by that red-tailed humble-bee I speak of. | King, then by that red-tail'd humble Bee I speak of. |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW IV.v.38 | fisnomy is more hotter in France than there. | fisnomie is more hotter in France then there. |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW V.i.24.1 | Than is his use. | Then is his vse. |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW V.ii.40 | You beg more than ‘ word ’ then. Cox my passion! | You begge more then word then. Cox my passion, |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW V.iii.24 | And deeper than oblivion we do bury | And deeper then obliuion, we do burie |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW V.iii.30 | Then shall we have a match. I have letters sent me | Then shall we haue a match. I haue letters sent me, |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW V.iii.71 | Which better than the first, O dear heaven, bless! | Which better then the first, O deere heauen blesse, |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW V.iii.104 | Than I have in this ring. 'Twas mine, 'twas Helen's, | Then I haue in this Ring. 'Twas mine, 'twas Helens, |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW V.iii.105 | Whoever gave it you; then if you know | Who euer gaue it you: then if you know |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW V.iii.120 | More than to see this ring. Take him away. | More then to see this Ring. Take him away, |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW V.iii.181 | Than for to think that I would sink it here. | Then for to thinke that I would sinke it heere. |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW V.iii.184.1 | Than in my thought it lies! | Then in my thought it lies. |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW V.iii.229 | The story then goes false you threw it him | The story then goes false, you threw it him |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW V.iii.255 | Faith, I know more than I'll speak. | Faith I know more then Ile speake. |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW V.iii.258 | them as I said; but more than that, he loved her, for | them as I said, but more then that he loued her, for |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW V.iii.272.1 | Where did you find it then? | Where did you finde it then? |
All's Well That Ends Well | AW V.iii.336 | Ours be your patience then and yours our parts; | Ours be your patience then, and yours our parts, |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.i.17 | Then must thou needs find out new heaven, new earth. | Then must thou needes finde out new Heauen, new Earth. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.ii.17 | Pray then, foresee me one. | Pray then, foresee me one. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.ii.18 | You shall be yet far fairer than you are. | You shall be yet farre fairer then you are. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.ii.24 | You shall be more beloving than beloved. | You shall be more belouing, then beloued. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.ii.33 | O, excellent! I love long life better than figs. | Oh excellent, I loue long life better then Figs. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.ii.35 | Than that which is to approach. | then that which is to approach. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.ii.36 | Then belike my children shall have no | Then belike my Children shall haue no |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.ii.59 | Am I not an inch of fortune better than she? | Am I not an inch of Fortune better then she? |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.ii.61 | better than I, where would you choose it? | better then I: where would you choose it. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.ii.110 | Have power to utter. O, then we bring forth weeds | Haue power to vtter. Oh then we bring forth weeds, |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.ii.130 | Ten thousand harms, more than the ills I know, | Ten thousand harmes, more then the illes I know |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.ii.134 | Why, then we kill all our women. We see | Why then we kill all our Women. We see |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.ii.150 | storms and tempests than almanacs can report. This | stormes and Tempests then Almanackes can report. This |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.ii.154 | O, sir, you had then left unseen a wonderful | Oh sir, you had then left vnseene a wonderfull |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.ii.167 | women but Fulvia, then had you indeed a cut, and the | Women but Fuluia, then had you indeede a cut, and the |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.ii.191 | Higher than both in blood and life, stands up | Higher then both in Blood and Life, stands vp |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.iii.34 | Then was the time for words. No going then! | Then was the time for words: No going then, |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.iii.77 | Then bid adieu to me, and say the tears | Then bid adiew to me, and say the teares |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.iv.6 | Than Cleopatra, nor the queen of Ptolemy | Then Cleopatra: nor the Queene of Ptolomy |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.iv.7 | More womanly than he; hardly gave audience, or | More Womanly then he. Hardly gaue audience / Or |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.iv.14 | Rather than purchased, what he cannot change | Rather then purchaste: what he cannot change, |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.iv.15 | Than what he chooses. | Then what he chooses. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.iv.55.1 | Than could his war resisted. | Then could his Warre resisted |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.iv.61 | Than savages could suffer. Thou didst drink | Then Sauages could suffer. Thou did'st drinke |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.iv.63 | Which beasts would cough at. Thy palate then did deign | Which Beasts would cough at. Thy pallat thẽ did daine |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.v.75 | To say as I said then. But come, away, | To say, as I saide then. But come, away, |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.ii.10 | Serves for the matter that is then born in't. | serues for the matter that is then borne in't. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.ii.22 | Murder in healing wounds. Then, noble partners, | Murther in healing wounds. Then Noble Partners, |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.ii.32 | Nay then. | Nay then. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.ii.41 | No more than my residing here at Rome | No more then my reciding heere at Rome |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.ii.79 | He fell upon me, ere admitted, then. | he fell vpon me, ere admitted, then: |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.ii.94 | And then when poisoned hours had bound me up | And then when poysoned houres had bound me vp |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.ii.115 | Go to, then; your considerate stone. | Go too then: your Considerate stone. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.ii.134 | No worse a husband than the best of men; | No worse a husband then the best of men: |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.ii.139 | Would then be nothing. Truths would be tales, | Would then be nothing. Truth's would be tales, |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.v.22 | Then put my tires and mantles on him, whilst | Then put my Tires and Mantles on him, whilst |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.v.48 | Caesar and he are greater friends than ever. | Caesar, and he, are greater Friends then euer. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.v.73.2 | Nay, then I'll run. | Nay then Ile runne: |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.v.83 | A meaner than myself; since I myself | A meaner then my selfe: since I my selfe |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.v.90 | I cannot hate thee worser than I do | I cannot hate thee worser then I do, |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.vi.36 | Rid all the sea of pirates; then, to send | Rid all the Sea of Pirats. Then, to send |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.vi.39.3 | Know, then, | Know then |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.vi.51 | That called me timelier than my purpose hither; | That cal'd me timelier then my purpose hither: |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.vi.67 | Then so much have I heard. | Then so much haue I heard, |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.vi.113 | Then is Caesar and he for ever knit together. | Then is Casar and he, for euer knit together. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.vi.117 | the marriage than the love of the parties. | the Marriage, then the loue of the parties. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.vi.124 | Antony. He will to his Egyptian dish again. Then shall | Anthony: he will to his Egyptian dish againe: then shall |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.vii.33 | in till then. | in till then. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.vii.90 | The third part then is drunk. Would it were all, | The third part, then he is drunk: would it were all, |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.vii.101.1 | Than drink so much in one. | then drinke so much in one. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.vii.108 | The while I'll place you; then the boy shall sing. | The while, Ile place you, then the Boy shall sing. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.vii.121 | Is weaker than the wine, and mine own tongue | Is weaker then the Wine, and mine owne tongue |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.i.14 | Better to leave undone than by our deed | Better to leaue vndone, then by our deed |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.i.17 | More in their officer than person. Sossius, | More in their officer, then person. Sossius |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.i.21 | Who does i'th' wars more than his captain can | Who does i'th'Warres more then his Captaine can, |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.i.24 | Than gain which darkens him. | Then gaine, which darkens him. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.iii.20 | She shows a body rather than a life, | She shewes a body, rather then a life, |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.iii.21.1 | A statue than a breather. | A Statue, then a Breather. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.iv.8 | He vented them, most narrow measure lent me; | He vented then most narrow measure: lent me, |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.iv.24 | Than yours so branchless. But, as you requested, | Then your so branchlesse. But as you requested, |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.v.12 | Then, world, thou hast a pair of chaps, no more; | Then would thou hadst a paire of chaps no more, |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.vi.8 | Since then hath made between them. Unto her | Since then hath made betweene them. Vnto her, |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.vi.26 | His part o'th' isle. Then does he say he lent me | His part o'th'Isle. Then does he say, he lent me |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.vi.35 | I grant him part; but then in his Armenia, | I grant him part: but then in his Armenia, |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.vi.38 | Nor must not then be yielded to in this. | Nor must not then be yeelded to in this. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.vii.12 | What should not then be spared. He is already | What should not then be spar'd. He is already |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.vii.25.1 | Than by the negligent. | Then by the negligent. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.vii.53.1 | We then can do't at land. | We then can doo't at Land. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.x.29 | Ay, are you thereabouts? Why then, good night indeed. | I, are you thereabouts? Why then goodnight indeede. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.xi.45 | Well then, sustain me. O! | Well then, sustaine me: Oh. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.xiii.7 | The itch of his affection should not then | The itch of his Affection should not then |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.xiii.11 | Than was his loss, to course your flying flags | Then was his losse, to course your flying Flagges, |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.xiii.15 | The Queen shall then have courtesy, so she | The Queene shall then haue courtesie, / So she |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.xiii.53 | Thus then, thou most renowned: Caesar entreats | Thus then thou most renown'd, Casar intreats, |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.xiii.55.1 | Further than he is Caesar. | Further then he is Casars. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.xiii.95.1 | Than with an old one dying. | Then with an old one dying. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.ii.44 | Than death and honour. Let's to supper, come, | Then death, and Honor. Let's to Supper, come, |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.iv.15 | More tight at this than thou. Dispatch. O, love, | More tight at this, then thou: Dispatch. O Loue, |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.iv.38 | Then Antony – but now. Well, on. | Then Anthony; but now. Well on. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.ix.19 | Nobler than my revolt is infamous, | Nobler then my reuolt is Infamous, |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.ix.33 | Come on then; he may recover yet. | Come on then, he may recouer yet. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xiii.2 | Than Telamon for his shield; the boar of Thessaly | Then Telamon for his Shield, the Boare of Thessaly |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xiii.6.1 | Than greatness going off. | Then greatnesse going off. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xiv.31 | Then in the midst a tearing groan did break | Then in the midd'st a tearing grone did breake |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xiv.34.2 | Dead, then? | Dead then? |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xiv.40 | Heart, once be stronger than thy continent, | Heart, once be stronger then thy Continent, |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xiv.49 | Itself with strength. Seal then, and all is done. | It selfe with strength: Seale then and all is done. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xiv.61 | Than she which by her death our Caesar tells | Then she which by her death, our Casar telles |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xiv.67 | Thou then wouldst kill me. Do't; the time is come. | thou then would'st kill me. / Doo't, the time is come: |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xiv.78 | Come then; for with a wound I must be cured. | Come then: for with a wound I must be cur'd. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xiv.81 | When I did make thee free, swor'st thou not then | When I did make thee free, swor'st yu not then |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xiv.85 | Turn from me then that noble countenance | Turne from me then that Noble countenance, |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xiv.88.2 | Then let it do at once | Then let it do at once |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xiv.94 | Why, there then! Thus I do escape the sorrow | Why there then: / Thus I do escape the sorrow |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xiv.95.2 | Thrice nobler than myself, | Thrice-Nobler then my selfe, |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xiv.101 | As to a lover's bed. Come then; and, Eros, | As to a Louers bed. Come then, and Eros, |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xv.62 | No better than a sty? O, see, my women, | No better then a Stye? Oh see my women: |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xv.79 | Become a dog that's mad; then is it sin | Become a Dogge that's mad: Then is it sinne, |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xv.85 | We'll bury him; and then, what's brave, what's noble, | Wee'l bury him: And then, what's braue, what's Noble, |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC V.ii.18 | No less beg than a kingdom. If he please | No lesse begge then a Kingdome: If he please |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC V.ii.63 | These thoughts of horror further than you shall | These thoughts of horror further then you shall |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC V.ii.109 | He'll lead me, then, in triumph? | Hee'l leade me then in Triumph. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC V.ii.125 | We will extenuate rather than enforce. | We will extenuate rather then inforce: |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC V.ii.146 | I had rather seel my lips than to my peril | I had rather seele my lippes, / Then to my perill |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC V.ii.155 | Than love that's hired! What, goest thou back? Thou shalt | Then loue that's hyr'd? What goest thou backe, yu shalt |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC V.ii.224.1 | Are stronger than mine eyes. | Are stronger then mine eyes. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC V.ii.251 | of them no longer than yesterday; a very honest | of them no longer then yesterday, a very honest |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC V.ii.290 | Come then, and take the last warmth of my lips. | Come then, and take the last warmth of my Lippes. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC V.ii.318 | I'll mend it, and then play – | Ile mend it, and then play--- |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC V.ii.338.2 | Poisoned, then. | Poyson'd then. |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC V.ii.360 | No less in pity than his glory which | No lesse in pitty, then his Glory which |
Antony and Cleopatra | AC V.ii.363 | And then to Rome. Come, Dolabella, see | And then to Rome. Come, Dolabella, see |
As You Like It | AYL I.i.29 | What mar you then, sir? | What mar you then sir? |
As You Like It | AYL I.i.41 | Ay, better than him I am before knows me: I | I, better then him I am before knowes mee: I |
As You Like It | AYL I.i.74 | I will no further offend you than becomes me | I will no further offend you, then becomes mee |
As You Like It | AYL I.i.105 | of her uncle than his own daughter, and never two ladies | of her Vncle, then his owne daughter, and neuer two Ladies |
As You Like It | AYL I.i.154 | yet I know not why – hates nothing more than he. Yet | (yet I know not why) hates nothing more then he: yet |
As You Like It | AYL I.ii.2 | Dear Celia, I show more mirth than I am | Deere Cellia; I show more mirth then I am |
As You Like It | AYL I.ii.27 | than with safety of a pure blush thou mayst in honour | then with safety of a pure blush, thou maist in honor |
As You Like It | AYL I.ii.29 | What shall be our sport then? | What shall be our sport then? |
As You Like It | AYL I.ii.72 | By my knavery – if I had it – then I were; | By my knauerie (if I had it) then I were: |
As You Like It | AYL I.ii.91 | Then shall we be news-crammed. | Then shal we be newes-cram'd. |
As You Like It | AYL I.ii.244.1 | More than your enemies. | More then your enemies. |
As You Like It | AYL I.ii.256 | More suits you to conceive than I to speak of. | More suites you to conceiue, then I to speake of. |
As You Like It | AYL I.ii.265 | Are dearer than the natural bond of sisters. | Are deerer then the naturall bond of Sisters: |
As You Like It | AYL I.ii.273 | Hereafter, in a better world than this, | Hereafter in a better world then this, |
As You Like It | AYL I.iii.7 | Then there were two cousins laid up, when the | Then there were two Cosens laid vp, when the |
As You Like It | AYL I.iii.22 | O, they take the part of a better wrestler than | O they take the part of a better wrastler then |
As You Like It | AYL I.iii.48 | As I do trust I am not – then, dear uncle, | (As I doe trust I am not) then deere Vncle, |
As You Like It | AYL I.iii.62 | Then, good my liege, mistake me not so much | Then good my Leige, mistake me not so much, |
As You Like It | AYL I.iii.67 | I did not then entreat to have her stay; | I did not then intreat to haue her stay, |
As You Like It | AYL I.iii.80 | When she is gone. Then open not thy lips: | When she is gone: then open not thy lips |
As You Like It | AYL I.iii.83 | Pronounce that sentence then on me, my liege, | Pronounce that sentence then on me my Leige, |
As You Like It | AYL I.iii.90 | I charge thee, be not thou more grieved than I am. | I charge thee be not thou more grieu'd then I am. |
As You Like It | AYL I.iii.94 | No, hath not? Rosalind lacks then the love | No, hath not? Rosaline lacks then the loue |
As You Like It | AYL I.iii.108 | Beauty provoketh thieves sooner than gold. | Beautie prouoketh theeues sooner then gold. |
As You Like It | AYL I.iii.113 | Because that I am more than common tall, | Because that I am more then common tall, |
As You Like It | AYL I.iii.122 | I'll have no worse a name than Jove's own page, | Ile haue no worse a name then Ioues owne Page, |
As You Like It | AYL II.i.3 | Than that of painted pomp? Are not these woods | Then that of painted pompe? Are not these woods |
As You Like It | AYL II.i.4 | More free from peril than the envious court? | More free from perill then the enuious Court? |
As You Like It | AYL II.i.28 | Than doth your brother that hath banished you. | Then doth your brother that hath banish'd you: |
As You Like It | AYL II.i.49 | To that which had too much.’ Then, being there alone, | To that which had too must: then being there alone, |
As You Like It | AYL II.i.68 | For then he's full of matter. | For then he's full of matter. |
As You Like It | AYL II.iii.76 | Than to die well, and not my master's debtor. | Then to die well, and not my Masters debter. |
As You Like It | AYL II.iv.10 | than bear you: yet I should bear no cross if I did bear | then beare you: yet I should beare no crosse if I did beare |
As You Like It | AYL II.iv.29 | O, thou didst then never love so heartily. | Oh thou didst then neuer loue so hartily, |
As You Like It | AYL II.iv.52 | Thou speakest wiser than thou art ware of. | Thou speak'st wiser then thou art ware of. |
As You Like It | AYL II.iv.73 | And wish, for her sake more than for mine own, | And wish for her sake more then for mine owne, |
As You Like It | AYL II.v.21 | More at your request than to please myself. | More at your request, then to please my selfe. |
As You Like It | AYL II.v.22 | Well then, if ever I thank any man, I'll thank you; | Well then, if euer I thanke any man, Ile thanke you: |
As You Like It | AYL II.vi.8 | nearer death than thy powers. (Raising him) For my sake | neerer death, then thy powers. / For my sake |
As You Like It | AYL II.vii.20 | And then he drew a dial from his poke, | And then he drew a diall from his poake, |
As You Like It | AYL II.vii.27 | And then from hour to hour we rot, and rot, | And then from houre to houre, we rot, and rot, |
As You Like It | AYL II.vii.83 | There then, how then, what then? Let me see wherein | There then, how then, what then, let me see wherein |
As You Like It | AYL II.vii.85 | Then he hath wronged himself; if he be free, | Then he hath wrong'd himselfe: if he be free, |
As You Like It | AYL II.vii.86 | Why then my taxing like a wild goose flies, | why then my taxing like a wild-goose flies |
As You Like It | AYL II.vii.104 | More than your force move us to gentleness. | more then your force / Moue vs to gentlenesse. |
As You Like It | AYL II.vii.128 | Then but forbear your food a little while | Then but forbeare your food a little while: |
As You Like It | AYL II.vii.139 | Presents more woeful pageants than the scene | Presents more wofull Pageants then the Sceane |
As You Like It | AYL II.vii.146 | Then, the whining schoolboy, with his satchel | Then, the whining Schoole-boy with his Satchell |
As You Like It | AYL II.vii.148 | Unwillingly to school; and then the lover, | Vnwillingly to schoole. And then the Louer, |
As You Like It | AYL II.vii.150 | Made to his mistress' eyebrow; then, a soldier, | Made to his Mistresse eye-brow. Then, a Soldier, |
As You Like It | AYL II.vii.154 | Even in the cannon's mouth; and then, the justice, | Euen in the Canons mouth: And then, the Iustice |
As You Like It | AYL II.vii.183 | Then hey-ho, the holly, | The heigh ho, the holly, |
As You Like It | AYL II.vii.193 | Then hey-ho, the holly, | |
As You Like It | AYL III.ii.33 | Then thou art damned. | Then thou art damn'd. |
As You Like It | AYL III.ii.40 | manners, then thy manners must be wicked, and wickedness | maners, then thy manners must be wicked, and wickednes |
As You Like It | AYL III.ii.64 | wise and perpend: civet is of a baser birth than tar, the | wise and perpend: Ciuet is of a baser birth then Tarre, the |
As You Like It | AYL III.ii.104 | Then to cart with Rosalind. | then to cart with Rosalinde. |
As You Like It | AYL III.ii.113 | I'll graff it with you, and then I shall graff | Ile graffe it with you, and then I shall graffe |
As You Like It | AYL III.ii.114 | it with a medlar; then it will be the earliest fruit | it with a Medler: then it will be the earliest fruit |
As You Like It | AYL III.ii.161 | some of them had in them more feet than the verses | some of them had in them more feete then the Verses |
As You Like It | AYL III.ii.220 | To say ‘ ay ’ and ‘ no ’ to these particulars is more than to | to say I and no, to these particulars, is more then to |
As You Like It | AYL III.ii.294 | Then there is no true lover in the forest, else | Then there is no true Louer in the Forrest, else |
As You Like It | AYL III.ii.321 | between term and term, and then they perceive not how | betweene Terme and Terme, and then they perceiue not how |
As You Like It | AYL III.ii.329 | Your accent is something finer than you could | Your accent is something finer, then you could |
As You Like It | AYL III.ii.363 | Then your hose should be ungartered, your bonnet | then your hose should be vngarter'd, your bonnet |
As You Like It | AYL III.ii.368 | than seeming the lover of any other. | then seeming the Louer of any other. |
As You Like It | AYL III.ii.373 | than to confess she does: that is one of the points in the | then to confesse she do's: that is one of the points, in the |
As You Like It | AYL III.ii.397 | would now like him, now loathe him; then entertain | would now like him, now loath him: then entertaine |
As You Like It | AYL III.ii.398 | him, then forswear him; now weep for him, then spit | him, then forswear him: now weepe for him, then spit |
As You Like It | AYL III.iii.8 | O knowledge ill-inhabited, worse than Jove | O knowledge ill inhabited, worse then Ioue |
As You Like It | AYL III.iii.12 | Understanding, it strikes a man more dead than a great | vnderstanding: it strikes a man more dead then a great |
As You Like It | AYL III.iii.20 | Do you wish then that the gods had made me | Do you wish then that the Gods had made me |
As You Like It | AYL III.iii.54 | town is more worthier than a village, so is the forehead | Towne is more worthier then a village, so is the forehead |
As You Like It | AYL III.iii.55 | of a married man more honourable than the bare brow | of a married man, more honourable then the bare brow |
As You Like It | AYL III.iii.56 | of a bachelor; and by how much defence is better than | of a Batcheller: and by how much defence is better then |
As You Like It | AYL III.iii.57 | no skill, by so much is a horn more precious than to | no skill, by so much is a horne more precious then to |
As You Like It | AYL III.iii.79 | wainscot; then one of you will prove a shrunk panel and, | Wainscot, then one of you wil proue a shrunke pannell, and |
As You Like It | AYL III.iii.82 | be married of him than of another, for he is not like to | bee married of him then of another, for he is not like to |
As You Like It | AYL III.iv.7 | Something browner than Judas's. Marry, his | Something browner then Iudasses: / Marrie his |
As You Like It | AYL III.iv.28 | stronger than the word of a tapster; they are both the | stronger then the word of a Tapster, they are both the |
As You Like It | AYL III.v.7 | Than he that dies and lives by bloody drops? | Then he that dies and liues by bloody drops? |
As You Like It | AYL III.v.30 | Then shall you know the wounds invisible | Then shall you know the wouuds inuisible |
As You Like It | AYL III.v.39 | Than without candle may go dark to bed – | Then without Candle may goe darke to bed: |
As You Like It | AYL III.v.42 | I see no more in you than in the ordinary | I see no more in you then in the ordinary |
As You Like It | AYL III.v.52 | Than she a woman. 'Tis such fools as you | Then she a woman. 'Tis such fooles as you |
As You Like It | AYL III.v.56 | Than any of her lineaments can show her. | Then any of her lineaments can show her: |
As You Like It | AYL III.v.65 | I had rather hear you chide than this man woo. | I had rather here you chide, then this man wooe. |
As You Like It | AYL III.v.73 | For I am falser than vows made in wine. | For I am falser then vowes made in wine: |
As You Like It | AYL III.v.98 | Than thine own gladness that thou art employed. | Then thine owne gladnesse, that thou art employd. |
As You Like It | AYL III.v.103 | That the main harvest reaps. Loose now and then | That the maine haruest reapes: loose now and then |
As You Like It | AYL III.v.116 | Is his complexion; and faster than his tongue | Is his complexion: and faster then his tongue |
As You Like It | AYL III.v.122 | Than that mixed in his cheek; 'twas just the difference | Then that mixt in his cheeke: 'twas iust the difference |
As You Like It | AYL III.v.128 | I have more cause to hate him than to love him, | Haue more cause to hate him then to loue him, |
As You Like It | AYL IV.i.4 | I am so: I do love it better than laughing. | I am so: I doe loue it better then laughing. |
As You Like It | AYL IV.i.7 | modern censure worse than drunkards. | moderne censure, worse then drunkards. |
As You Like It | AYL IV.i.9 | Why then, 'tis good to be a post. | Why then 'tis good to be a poste. |
As You Like It | AYL IV.i.21 | see other men's; then, to have seen much and to have | see other mens; then to haue seene much, and to haue |
As You Like It | AYL IV.i.25 | rather have a fool to make me merry than experience to | rather haue a foole to make me merrie, then experience to |
As You Like It | AYL IV.i.28 | Nay then, God buy you, an you talk in blank verse. | Nay then God buy you, and you talke in blanke verse. |
As You Like It | AYL IV.i.50 | than you make a woman. Besides he brings his destiny | then you make a woman: besides, he brings his destinie |
As You Like It | AYL IV.i.60 | of a better leer than you. | of a better leere then you. |
As You Like It | AYL IV.i.72 | Then she puts you to entreaty, and there | Then she puts you to entreatie, and there |
As You Like It | AYL IV.i.77 | or I should think my honesty ranker than my wit. | or I should thinke my honestie ranker then my wit. |
As You Like It | AYL IV.i.84 | Then, in mine own person, I die. | Then in mine owne person, I die. |
As You Like It | AYL IV.i.104 | Then love me, Rosalind. | Then loue me Rosalind. |
As You Like It | AYL IV.i.112 | Why then, can one desire too much of a good | Why then, can one desire too much of a good |
As You Like It | AYL IV.i.124 | Then you must say ‘ I take thee, Rosalind, for | Then you must say, I take thee Rosalind for |
As You Like It | AYL IV.i.139 | of thee than a Barbary cock-pigeon over his hen, more | of thee, then a Barbary cocke-pidgeon ouer his hen, more |
As You Like It | AYL IV.i.140 | clamorous than a parrot against rain, more new-fangled | clamorous then a Parrat against raine, more new-fangled |
As You Like It | AYL IV.i.141 | than an ape, more giddy in my desires than a monkey; | then an ape, more giddy in my desires, then a monkey: |
As You Like It | AYL IV.i.182 | With no less religion than if thou wert indeed | With no lesse religion, then if thou wert indeed |
As You Like It | AYL IV.ii.12 | Then sing him home, the rest shall bear | Then sing him home, the rest shall beare |
As You Like It | AYL IV.iii.37 | Than in their countenance. Will you hear the letter? | Then in their countenance: will you heare the letter? |
As You Like It | AYL IV.iii.56 | How then might your prayers move? | How then might your praiers moue? |
As You Like It | AYL IV.iii.64 | And then I'll study how to die. | And then Ile studie how to die. |
As You Like It | AYL IV.iii.85 | Then should I know you by description. | Then should I know you by description, |
As You Like It | AYL IV.iii.89 | And browner than her brother'. Are not you | And browner then her brother: are not you |
As You Like It | AYL IV.iii.129 | But kindness, nobler ever than revenge, | But kindnesse, nobler euer then reuenge, |
As You Like It | AYL IV.iii.130 | And nature, stronger than his just occasion, | And Nature stronger then his iust occasion, |
As You Like It | AYL IV.iii.172 | Well then, take a good heart, and counterfeit to | Well then, take a good heart, and counterfeit to |
As You Like It | AYL V.i.39 | Then learn this of me. To have is to have. | Then learne this of me, To haue, is to haue. |
As You Like It | AYL V.ii.27 | Ay, and greater wonders than that. | I, and greater wonders then that. |
As You Like It | AYL V.ii.46 | Why, then, tomorrow I cannot serve your | Why then to morrow, I cannot serue your |
As You Like It | AYL V.ii.49 | I will weary you then no longer with idle | I will wearie you then no longer with idle |
As You Like It | AYL V.ii.50 | talking. Know of me then, for now I speak to some | talking. Know of me then (for now I speake to some |
As You Like It | AYL V.ii.54 | are; neither do I labour for a greater esteem than may | are: neither do I labor for a greater esteeme then may |
As You Like It | AYL V.ii.56 | yourself good, and not to grace me. Believe then, if you | your selfe good, and not to grace me. Beleeue then, if you |
As You Like It | AYL V.iv.82 | I durst go no further than the Lie Circumstantial, | I durst go no further then the lye circumstantial: |
As You Like It | AYL V.iv.98 | then I said so;’ and they shook hands and swore | then I saide so: and they shooke hands, and swore |
As You Like It | AYL V.iv.105 | Then is there mirth in heaven, | Then is there mirth in heauen, |
As You Like It | AYL V.iv.118 | Why then, my love adieu! | why then my loue adieu |
As You Like It | AYL V.iv.141 | High wedlock then be honoured; | High wedlock then be honored: |
As You Like It | AYL V.iv.190 | I am for other than for dancing measures. | I am for other, then for dancing meazures. |
As You Like It | AYL V.iv.197 | but it is no more unhandsome than to see the lord the | but it is no more vnhandsome, then to see the Lord the |
As You Like It | AYL V.iv.202 | I in, then, that am neither a good epilogue nor cannot | I in then, that am neither a good Epilogue, nor cannot |
The Comedy of Errors | CE I.i.33 | Than I to speak my griefs unspeakable. | Then I to speake my griefes vnspeakeable: |
The Comedy of Errors | CE I.i.78 | And left the ship, then sinking-ripe, to us. | And left the ship then sinking ripe to vs. |
The Comedy of Errors | CE I.i.155 | And live. If no, then thou art doomed to die. | And liue: if no, then thou art doom'd to die: |
The Comedy of Errors | CE I.ii.14 | And then return and sleep within mine inn; | And then returne and sleepe within mine Inne, |
The Comedy of Errors | CE I.ii.23 | And then go to my inn and dine with me? | And then goe to my Inne and dine with me? |
The Comedy of Errors | CE I.ii.30 | Farewell till then. I will go lose myself | Farewell till then: I will goe loose my selfe, |
The Comedy of Errors | CE I.ii.69 | Reserve them till a merrier hour than this. | Reserue them till a merrier houre then this: |
The Comedy of Errors | CE II.i.10 | Why should their liberty than ours be more? | Why should their libertie then ours be more? |
The Comedy of Errors | CE II.i.23 | Of more pre-eminence than fish and fowls, | Of more preheminence then fish and fowles, |
The Comedy of Errors | CE II.i.25 | Then let your will attend on their accords. | Then let your will attend on their accords. |
The Comedy of Errors | CE II.i.90 | From my poor cheek? Then he hath wasted it. | From my poore cheeke? then he hath wasted it. |
The Comedy of Errors | CE II.i.93 | Unkindness blunts it more than marble hard. | Vnkindnesse blunts it more then marble hard. |
The Comedy of Errors | CE II.i.97 | By him not ruined? Then is he the ground | By him not ruin'd? Then is he the ground |
The Comedy of Errors | CE II.ii.46 | Why, first: for flouting me; and then wherefore: | Why first for flowting me, and then wherefore, |
The Comedy of Errors | CE II.ii.62 | Well, sir, then 'twill be | Well sir, then 'twill be |
The Comedy of Errors | CE II.ii.89 | man hath more hair than wit. | man hath more haire then wit. |
The Comedy of Errors | CE II.ii.100 | Sure ones, then. | Sure ones then. |
The Comedy of Errors | CE II.ii.103 | Certain ones, then. | Certaine ones then. |
The Comedy of Errors | CE II.ii.129 | That thou art then estranged from thyself? | That thou art then estranged from thy selfe? |
The Comedy of Errors | CE II.ii.132 | Am better than thy dear self's better part. | Am better then thy deere selfes better part. |
The Comedy of Errors | CE II.ii.154 | Keep then fair league and truce with thy true bed, | Keepe then faire league and truce with thy true bed, |
The Comedy of Errors | CE II.ii.175 | How can she thus then call us by our names? – | How can she thus then call vs by our names? |
The Comedy of Errors | CE III.ii.6 | Then for her wealth's sake use her with more kindness; | Then for her wealths-sake vse her with more kindnesse: |
The Comedy of Errors | CE III.ii.25 | Then, gentle brother, get you in again. | Then gentle brother get you in againe; |
The Comedy of Errors | CE III.ii.32 | Than our earth's wonder, more than earth divine. | Then our earths wonder, more then earth diuine. |
The Comedy of Errors | CE III.ii.40 | Transform me, then, and to your power I'll yield. | Transforme me then, and to your powre Ile yeeld. |
The Comedy of Errors | CE III.ii.41 | But if that I am I, then well I know | But if that I am I, then well I know, |
The Comedy of Errors | CE III.ii.103 | she'll burn a week longer than the whole world. | she'l burne a weeke longer then the whole World. |
The Comedy of Errors | CE III.ii.117 | Then she bears some | Then she beares some |
The Comedy of Errors | CE III.ii.120 | than from hip to hip. She is spherical, like a globe. I | then from hippe o hippe: she is sphericall, like a globe: I |
The Comedy of Errors | CE III.ii.183 | And then receive my money for the chain. | And then receiue my money for the chaine. |
The Comedy of Errors | CE III.ii.193 | If any ship put out, then straight away! | If any ship put out, then straight away. |
The Comedy of Errors | CE IV.i.31 | Than I stand debted to this gentleman. | Then I stand debted to this Gentleman, |
The Comedy of Errors | CE IV.i.40 | Then you will bring the chain to her yourself. | Then you will bring the Chaine to her your selfe. |
The Comedy of Errors | CE IV.i.88 | And then she bears away. Our fraughtage, sir, | And then sir she beares away. Our fraughtage sir, |
The Comedy of Errors | CE IV.ii.9 | Then swore he that he was a stranger here. |
Then swore he that he was a stranger heere. |
The Comedy of Errors | CE IV.ii.11.1 | Then pleaded I for you. |
Then pleaded I for you. |
The Comedy of Errors | CE IV.ii.15 | First he did praise my beauty, then my speech. |
First, he did praise my beautie, then my speech. |
The Comedy of Errors | CE IV.ii.23 | Who would be jealous, then, of such a one? |
Who would be iealous then of such a one? |
The Comedy of Errors | CE IV.ii.25 | Ah, but I think him better than I say, |
Ah but I thinke him better then I say: |
The Comedy of Errors | CE IV.ii.32 | No. He's in Tartar limbo, worse than hell. |
No, he's in Tartar limbo, worse then hell: |
The Comedy of Errors | CE IV.ii.57 | Time is a very bankrupt, and owes more than he's worth to season. |
Time is a verie bankerout, and owes more then he's worth to
season. |
The Comedy of Errors | CE IV.iii.27 | do more exploits with his mace than a morris-pike. | doe more exploits with his Mace, then a Moris Pike. |
The Comedy of Errors | CE IV.iii.39 | and then were you hindered by the sergeant to tarry for | and then were you hindred by the Serieant to tarry for |
The Comedy of Errors | CE IV.iii.65 | Avoid then, fiend. What tellest thou me of supping? | Auoid then fiend, what tel'st thou me of supping? |
The Comedy of Errors | CE V.i.70 | Poisons more deadly than a mad dog's tooth. | Poisons more deadly then a mad dogges tooth. |
The Comedy of Errors | CE V.i.85 | The consequence is, then, thy jealous fits | The consequence is then, thy iealous fits |
The Comedy of Errors | CE V.i.93 | Then let your servants bring my husband forth. | Then let your seruants bring my husband forth |
The Comedy of Errors | CE V.i.154 | We came again to bind them. Then they fled | We came againe to binde them: then they fled |
The Comedy of Errors | CE V.i.194 | That then I lost for thee, now grant me justice! | That then I lost for thee, now grant me iustice. |
The Comedy of Errors | CE V.i.220 | Could witness it, for he was with me then, | Could witnesse it: for he was with me then, |
The Comedy of Errors | CE V.i.233 | Then fairly I bespoke the officer | Then fairely I bespoke the Officer |
The Comedy of Errors | CE V.i.246 | Cries out I was possessed. Then all together | Cries out, I was possest. Then altogether |
The Comedy of Errors | CE V.i.264 | And then you fled into this abbey here, | And then you fled into this Abbey heere, |
The Comedy of Errors | CE V.i.361 | What then became of them I cannot tell. | What then became of them, I cannot tell: |
The Comedy of Errors | CE V.i.375 | Did call me brother. (To Luciana) What I told you then | Did call me brother. What I told you then, |
The Comedy of Errors | CE V.i.423 | We'll draw cuts for the senior. Till then, lead thou first. | Wee'l draw Cuts for the Signior, till then, lead thou first. |
The Comedy of Errors | CE V.i.424 | Nay then, thus: | Nay then thus: |
Coriolanus | Cor I.i.4 | You are all resolved rather to die than to | You are all resolu'd rather to dy then to |
Coriolanus | Cor I.i.69 | Of more strong link asunder than can ever | Of more strong linke assunder, then can euer |
Coriolanus | Cor I.i.117.2 | What then? | What then? |
Coriolanus | Cor I.i.118 | 'Fore me, this fellow speaks! What then? what then? | Fore me, this Fellow speakes. / What then? What then? |
Coriolanus | Cor I.i.120.2 | Well, what then? | Well, what then? |
Coriolanus | Cor I.i.171 | Than is the coal of fire upon the ice, | Then is the coale of fire vpon the Ice, |
Coriolanus | Cor I.i.223 | I am glad on't. Then we shall ha' means to vent | I am glad on't, then we shall ha meanes to vent |
Coriolanus | Cor I.i.234.2 | Then, worthy Martius, | Then worthy Martius, |
Coriolanus | Cor I.i.263 | Better be held nor more attained than by | Better be held, nor more attain'd then by |
Coriolanus | Cor I.i.267 | Will then cry out of Martius, ‘ O, if he | Will then cry out of Martius: Oh, if he |
Coriolanus | Cor I.i.276 | More than his singularity, he goes | More then his singularity, he goes |
Coriolanus | Cor I.ii.13 | Who is of Rome worse hated than of you, | (Who is of Rome worse hated then of you) |
Coriolanus | Cor I.iii.4 | honour than in the embracements of his bed where he | Honor, then in the embracements of his Bed, where he |
Coriolanus | Cor I.iii.10 | become such a person – that it was no better then picture-like | become such a person, that it was no better then Picture-like |
Coriolanus | Cor I.iii.16 | than now in first seeing he had proved himself a | then now in first seeing he had proued himselfe a |
Coriolanus | Cor I.iii.19 | then? | then? |
Coriolanus | Cor I.iii.20 | Then his good report should have been my | Then his good report should haue beene my |
Coriolanus | Cor I.iii.23 | none less dear than thine and my good Martius, I had | none lesse deere then thine, and my good Martius, I had |
Coriolanus | Cor I.iii.24 | rather had eleven die nobly for their country than one | rather had eleuen dye Nobly for their Countrey, then one |
Coriolanus | Cor I.iii.36 | With his mailed hand then wiping, forth he goes, | With his mail'd hand, then wiping, forth he goes |
Coriolanus | Cor I.iii.41 | Than gilt his trophy. The breasts of Hecuba, | Then gilt his Trophe. The brests of Hecuba |
Coriolanus | Cor I.iii.43 | Than Hector's forehead when it spit forth blood | Then Hectors forhead, when it spit forth blood |
Coriolanus | Cor I.iii.57 | than look upon his schoolmaster. | then looke vpon his Schoolmaster. |
Coriolanus | Cor I.iii.107 | In troth, I think she would. Fare you well, then. | In troth I thinke she would: / Fare you well then. |
Coriolanus | Cor I.iii.112 | Well, then, farewell. | Well, then farewell. |
Coriolanus | Cor I.iv.9 | Then shall we hear their 'larum, and they ours. | Then shall we heare their Larum, & they Ours. |
Coriolanus | Cor I.iv.14 | No, nor a man that fears you less than he: | No, nor a man that feares you lesse then he, |
Coriolanus | Cor I.iv.15 | That's lesser than a little. (Drum afar off) Hark! our drums | That's lesser then a little: Drum a farre off. Hearke, our Drummes |
Coriolanus | Cor I.iv.17 | Rather than they shall pound us up. Our gates, | Rather then they shall pound vs vp our Gates, |
Coriolanus | Cor I.iv.25 | With hearts more proof than shields. Advance, brave Titus. | With hearts more proofe then Shields. / Aduance braue Titus, |
Coriolanus | Cor I.iv.33 | Further than seen, and one infect another | Farther then seene, and one infect another |
Coriolanus | Cor I.v.11 | Piercing our Romans. Then, valiant Titus, take | Piercing our Romanes: Then Valiant Titus take |
Coriolanus | Cor I.v.19 | Than dangerous to me. To Aufidius thus | Then dangerous to me: To Auffidious thus, |
Coriolanus | Cor I.v.24 | Than those she placeth highest. So farewell. | Then those she placeth highest: So farewell. |
Coriolanus | Cor I.vi.13.1 | And then I came away. | And then I came away. |
Coriolanus | Cor I.vi.26 | More than I know the sound of Martius' tongue | More then I know the sound of Martius Tongue |
Coriolanus | Cor I.vi.45.1 | From rascals worse than they. | From Rascals worse then they. |
Coriolanus | Cor I.vi.70 | Lesser his person than an ill report; | Lessen his person, then an ill report: |
Coriolanus | Cor I.vi.72 | And that his country's dearer than himself; | And that his Countries deerer then himselfe, |
Coriolanus | Cor I.viii.2.1 | Worse than a promise-breaker. | Worse then a Promise-breaker. |
Coriolanus | Cor I.viii.4 | More than thy fame and envy. Fix thy foot. | More then thy Fame and Enuy: Fix thy foot. |
Coriolanus | Cor I.ix.22 | Worse than a theft, no less than a traducement, | worse then a Theft, / No lesse then a Traducement, |
Coriolanus | Cor I.ix.53 | More cruel to your good report than grateful | More cruell to your good report, then gratefull |
Coriolanus | Cor I.ix.57 | Then reason safely with you. Therefore be it known, | Then reason safely with you: Therefore be it knowne, |
Coriolanus | Cor I.ix.84 | But then Aufidius was within my view, | But then Auffidius was within my view, |
Coriolanus | Cor II.i.39 | What then, sir? | What then sir? |
Coriolanus | Cor II.i.40 | Why, then you should discover a brace of unmeriting, | Why then you should discouer a brace of vnmeriting, |
Coriolanus | Cor II.i.49 | of the night than with the forehead of the morning. | of the night, then with the forhead of the morning. |
Coriolanus | Cor II.i.67 | then rejourn the controversy of threepence to a second | then reiourne the Controuersie of three-pence to a second |
Coriolanus | Cor II.i.77 | giber for the table than a necessary bencher in the | gyber for the Table, then a necessary Bencher in the |
Coriolanus | Cor II.i.113 | than a horse-drench. Is he not wounded? He was wont | then a Horse-drench. Is he not wounded? he was wont |
Coriolanus | Cor II.i.154 | Which, being advanced, declines, and then men die. | Which being aduanc'd, declines, and then men dye. |
Coriolanus | Cor II.i.196.1 | Than sway with them in theirs. | Then sway with them in theirs. |
Coriolanus | Cor II.i.214.2 | Then our office may | Then our Office may, |
Coriolanus | Cor II.i.230 | Than carry it but by the suit of the gentry to him | then carry it, / But by the suite of the Gentry to him, |
Coriolanus | Cor II.i.232 | Than have him hold that purpose and to put it | then haue him hold that purpose, and to put it |
Coriolanus | Cor II.i.234 | It shall be to him then as our good wills, | It shall be to him then, as our good wills; |
Coriolanus | Cor II.i.243 | Than camels in the war, who have their provand | Then Cammels in their Warre, who haue their Prouand |
Coriolanus | Cor II.ii.18 | greater devotion than they can render it him, and leaves | greater deuotion, then they can render it him; and leaues |
Coriolanus | Cor II.ii.49 | Than we to stretch it out. (To the Tribunes) Masters o'th' people, | Then we to stretch it out. Masters a'th' People, |
Coriolanus | Cor II.ii.57 | A kinder value of the people than | a kinder value of the People, then |
Coriolanus | Cor II.ii.62.1 | Than the rebuke you give it. | then the rebuke you giue it. |
Coriolanus | Cor II.ii.68.1 | Than hear say how I got them. | Then heare say how I got them. |
Coriolanus | Cor II.ii.74 | When the alarum were struck than idly sit | When the Alarum were strucke, then idly sit |
Coriolanus | Cor II.ii.79 | Than one on's ears to hear it. Proceed, Cominius. | Then on ones Eares to heare it. Proceed Cominius. |
Coriolanus | Cor II.ii.87 | Beyond the mark of others. Our then dictator, | Beyond the marke of others: our then Dictator, |
Coriolanus | Cor II.ii.114 | His ready sense, then straight his doubled spirit | His readie sence: then straight his doubled spirit |
Coriolanus | Cor II.ii.125 | Than misery itself would give, rewards | Then Miserie it selfe would giue, rewards |
Coriolanus | Cor II.ii.132.2 | It then remains | It then remaines, |
Coriolanus | Cor II.ii.152 | Flourish. Cornets. Then exeunt. | Flourish Cornets. Then Exeunt. |
Coriolanus | Cor II.iii.71 | Well then, I pray, your price | Well then I pray, your price |
Coriolanus | Cor II.iii.98 | hat than my heart, I will practise the insinuating nod and | Hat, then my Heart, I will practice the insinuating nod, and |
Coriolanus | Cor II.iii.113 | Than crave the hire which first we do deserve. | Then craue the higher, which first we do deserue. |
Coriolanus | Cor II.iii.120 | For truth to o'erpeer. Rather than fool it so, | For Truth to o're-peere. Rather then foole it so, |
Coriolanus | Cor II.iii.186 | Than what he stood for, so his gracious nature | Then what he stood for: so his gracious nature |
Coriolanus | Cor II.iii.215 | Than dogs that are as often beat for barking | Then Dogges, that are as often beat for barking, |
Coriolanus | Cor II.iii.229 | More after our commandment than as guided | more after our commandment, / Then as guided |
Coriolanus | Cor II.iii.232 | Than what you should, made you against the grain | Then what you should, made you against the graine |
Coriolanus | Cor II.iii.256 | Than stay, past doubt, for greater. | Then stay past doubt, for greater: |
Coriolanus | Cor III.i.1 | Tullus Aufidius then had made new head? | Tullus Auffidius then had made new head. |
Coriolanus | Cor III.i.4 | So then the Volsces stand but as at first, | So then the Volces stand but as at first, |
Coriolanus | Cor III.i.50 | Why then should I be consul? By yond clouds, | Why then should I be Consull? by yond Clouds |
Coriolanus | Cor III.i.98 | Then vail your ignorance; if none, awake | Then vale your Ignorance: If none, awake |
Coriolanus | Cor III.i.107 | Than ever frowned in Greece. By Jove himself, | Then euer frown'd in Greece. By Ioue himselfe, |
Coriolanus | Cor III.i.120 | More worthier than their voices. They know the corn | More worthier then their Voyces. They know the Corne |
Coriolanus | Cor III.i.130 | Of our so frank donation. Well, what then? | Of our so franke Donation. Well, what then? |
Coriolanus | Cor III.i.150 | You that will be less fearful than discreet, | You that will be lesse fearefull, then discreet, |
Coriolanus | Cor III.i.152 | More than you doubt the change on't, that prefer | More then you doubt the change on't: That preferre |
Coriolanus | Cor III.i.168 | Then were they chosen. In a better hour | Then were they chosen: in a better houre, |
Coriolanus | Cor III.i.268 | Than the severity of the public power, | Then the seuerity of the publike Power, |
Coriolanus | Cor III.i.283.1 | Than so much loss of time. | Then so much losse of time. |
Coriolanus | Cor III.i.283.2 | Speak briefly then, | Speake breefely then, |
Coriolanus | Cor III.i.298 | Which I dare vouch is more than that he hath | (Which I dare vouch, is more then that he hath |
Coriolanus | Cor III.i.305 | Being once gangrened, is not then respected | Being once gangren'd, is not then respected |
Coriolanus | Cor III.i.328 | Be you then as the people's officer. | be you then as the peoples officer: |
Coriolanus | Cor III.ii.36.2 | Well, what then? What then? | Well, what then? what then? |
Coriolanus | Cor III.ii.39.1 | Must I then do't to them? | Must I then doo't to them? |
Coriolanus | Cor III.ii.59 | Than to take in a town with gentle words, | Then to take in a Towne with gentle words, |
Coriolanus | Cor III.ii.67 | How you can frown, than spend a fawn upon 'em | How you can frowne, then spend a fawne vpon 'em, |
Coriolanus | Cor III.ii.77 | More learned than the ears – waving thy head, | More learned then the eares, wauing thy head, |
Coriolanus | Cor III.ii.92.1 | Than flatter him in a bower. | Then flatter him in a Bower. |
Coriolanus | Cor III.ii.123.2 | At thy choice, then. | At thy choice then: |
Coriolanus | Cor III.ii.125 | Than thou of them. Come all to ruin. Let | Then thou of them. Come all to ruine, let |
Coriolanus | Cor III.ii.126 | Thy mother rather feel thy pride than fear | Thy Mother rather feele thy Pride, then feare |
Coriolanus | Cor III.ii.141 | Than are upon you yet. | Then are vpon you yet. |
Coriolanus | Cor III.ii.145 | Well, mildly be it then – mildly! | Well mildely be it then, Mildely. |
Coriolanus | Cor III.iii.15 | For death, for fine, or banishment, then let them | For death, for fine, or Banishment, then let them |
Coriolanus | Cor III.iii.28 | Be reined again to temperance, then he speaks | Be rein'd againe to Temperance, then he speakes |
Coriolanus | Cor III.iii.42 | Shall I be charged no further than this present? | Shall I be charg'd no further then this present? |
Coriolanus | Cor III.iii.57.1 | Rather than envy you. | Rather then enuy you. |
Coriolanus | Cor III.iii.62 | Say, then. 'Tis true, I ought so. | Say then: 'tis true, I ought so |
Coriolanus | Cor III.iii.113 | More holy and profound, than mine own life, | More holy, and profound, then mine owne life, |
Coriolanus | Cor III.iii.115 | And treasure of my loins. Then if I would | And treasure of my Loynes: then if I would |
Coriolanus | Cor IV.i.22 | Thy tears are salter than a younger man's | Thy teares are salter then a yonger mans, |
Coriolanus | Cor IV.i.31 | Makes feared and talked of more than seen – your son | Makes fear'd, and talk'd of more then seene: your Sonne |
Coriolanus | Cor IV.i.36 | More than a wild exposture to each chance | More then a wilde exposture, to each chance |
Coriolanus | Cor IV.ii.5.1 | Than when it was a-doing. | Then when it was a dooing. |
Coriolanus | Cor IV.ii.20.1 | Than thou hast spoken words? | Then thou hast spoken words. |
Coriolanus | Cor IV.ii.21 | More noble blows than ever thou wise words, | Moe Noble blowes, then euer yu wise words. |
Coriolanus | Cor IV.ii.25.2 | What then? | What then? |
Coriolanus | Cor IV.ii.25.3 | What then! | What then? |
Coriolanus | Cor IV.iii.14 | Hath been? Is it ended then? Our state thinks not | Hath bin; is it ended then? Our State thinks not |
Coriolanus | Cor IV.iv.4 | Have I heard groan and drop. Then know me not, | Haue I heard groane, and drop: Then know me not, |
Coriolanus | Cor IV.v.46 | an ass it is! Then thou dwell'st with daws too? | an Asse it is, then thou dwel'st with Dawes too? |
Coriolanus | Cor IV.v.50 | Ay, 'tis an honester service than to meddle | I, tis an honester seruice, then to meddle |
Coriolanus | Cor IV.v.87 | Stand I before thee here. Then if thou hast | Stand I before thee heere: Then if thou hast |
Coriolanus | Cor IV.v.97 | Th'art tired, then, in a word, I also am | Th'art tyr'd, then in a word, I also am |
Coriolanus | Cor IV.v.109 | Than thee, all-noble Martius. Let me twine | Then thee all-Noble Martius. Let me twine |
Coriolanus | Cor IV.v.120 | Than when I first my wedded mistress saw | Then when I first my wedded Mistris saw |
Coriolanus | Cor IV.v.149 | And more a friend than e'er an enemy; | And more a Friend, then ere an Enemie, |
Coriolanus | Cor IV.v.163 | him than I could think. | him, then I could think. |
Coriolanus | Cor IV.v.167 | than he you wot one. | then he, / You wot one. |
Coriolanus | Cor IV.v.225 | Why, then we shall have a stirring | Why then wee shall haue a stirring |
Coriolanus | Cor IV.v.232 | more bastard children than war's a destroyer of men. | more bastard Children, then warres a destroyer of men. |
Coriolanus | Cor IV.v.238 | Reason: because they then less | Reason, because they then lesse |
Coriolanus | Cor IV.vi.7 | Dissentious numbers pestering streets than see | Dissentious numbers pestring streets, then see |
Coriolanus | Cor IV.vi.28 | Than when these fellows ran about the streets, | Then when these Fellowes ran about the streets, |
Coriolanus | Cor IV.vi.74 | Than violent'st contrariety. | Then violent'st Contrariety. |
Coriolanus | Cor IV.vi.92 | Made by some other deity than Nature, | Made by some other Deity then Nature, |
Coriolanus | Cor IV.vi.95 | Than boys pursuing summer butterflies, | Then Boyes pursuing Summer Butter-flies, |
Coriolanus | Cor IV.vii.9 | Even to my person, than I thought he would | Euen to my person, then I thought he would |
Coriolanus | Cor IV.vii.42 | Not to be other than one thing, not moving | Not to be other then one thing, not moouing |
Coriolanus | Cor IV.vii.57 | Thou art poor'st of all; then shortly art thou mine. | Thou art poor'st of all; then shortly art thou mine. |
Coriolanus | Cor V.i.38 | More than the instant army we can make, | More then the instant Armie we can make |
Coriolanus | Cor V.i.44 | Unheard – what then? | vnheard: what then? |
Coriolanus | Cor V.i.52 | The veins unfilled, our blood is cold, and then | The Veines vnfill'd, our blood is cold, and then |
Coriolanus | Cor V.i.57 | Than in our priest-like fasts. Therefore I'll watch him | Then in our Priest-like Fasts: therefore Ile watch him |
Coriolanus | Cor V.i.59 | And then I'll set upon him. | And then Ile set vpon him. |
Coriolanus | Cor V.ii.37 | Then you should hate Rome, as he does. | Then you should hate Rome, as he do's. |
Coriolanus | Cor V.ii.67 | thee no worse than thy old father Menenius does! O my | thee no worse then thy old Father Menenius do's. O my |
Coriolanus | Cor V.ii.83 | Than pity note how much. Therefore be gone. | Then pitty: Note how much, therefore be gone. |
Coriolanus | Cor V.ii.84 | Mine ears against your suits are stronger than | Mine eares against your suites, are stronger then |
Coriolanus | Cor V.iii.22 | My wife comes foremost, then the honoured mould | My wife comes formost, then the honour'd mould |
Coriolanus | Cor V.iii.29 | Of stronger earth than others. My mother bows, | Of stronger earth then others: my Mother bowes, |
Coriolanus | Cor V.iii.52.1 | Than that of common sons. | Then that of common Sonnes. |
Coriolanus | Cor V.iii.53 | Whilst with no softer cushion than the flint | Whil'st with no softer Cushion then the Flint |
Coriolanus | Cor V.iii.58 | Then let the pebbles on the hungry beach | Then let the Pibbles on the hungry beach |
Coriolanus | Cor V.iii.59 | Fillip the stars. Then let the mutinous winds | Fillop the Starres: Then, let the mutinous windes |
Coriolanus | Cor V.iii.97 | How more unfortunate than all living women | How more vnfortunate then all liuing women |
Coriolanus | Cor V.iii.122 | Than seek the end of one, thou shalt no sooner | Then seeke the end of one; thou shalt no sooner |
Coriolanus | Cor V.iii.123 | March to assault thy country than to tread – | March to assault thy Country, then to treade |
Coriolanus | Cor V.iii.128 | I'll run away till I am bigger, but then I'll fight. | Ile run away / Till I am bigger, but then Ile fight. |
Coriolanus | Cor V.iii.158 | Than can our reasons. There's no man in the world | Then can our Reasons. There's no man in the world |
Coriolanus | Cor V.iii.171 | Than pity to our prayers. Down! An end; | Then pitty to our Prayers. Downe: an end, |
Coriolanus | Cor V.iii.177 | Than thou hast to deny't. Come, let us go. | Then thou hast to deny't. Come, let vs go: |
Coriolanus | Cor V.iii.182 | And then I'll speak a little. | & then Ile speak a litle |
Coriolanus | Cor V.iii.205 | A better witness back than words, which we, | A better witnesse backe then words, which we |
Coriolanus | Cor V.iv.14 | than a creeping thing. | then a creeping thing. |
Coriolanus | Cor V.iv.17 | mother now than an eight-year-old horse. The tartness | Mother now, then an eight yeare old horse. The tartnesse |
Coriolanus | Cor V.iv.28 | mercy in him than there is milk in a male tiger. That | mercy in him, then there is milke in a male-Tyger, that |
Coriolanus | Cor V.vi.44.1 | For no less spoil than glory – | For no lesse Spoile, then Glory. |
Coriolanus | Cor V.vi.73 | Than when I parted hence, but still subsisting | Then when I parted hence: but still subsisting |
Coriolanus | Cor V.vi.78 | Doth more than counterpoise a full third part | Doth more then counterpoize a full third part |
Coriolanus | Cor V.vi.81 | Than shame to th' Romans. And we here deliver, | Then shame to th' Romaines. And we heere deliuer |
Cymbeline | Cym I.i.2 | No more obey the heavens than our courtiers | no more obey the Heauens / Then our Courtiers: |
Cymbeline | Cym I.i.26 | Crush him together, rather than unfold | Crush him together, rather then vnfold |
Cymbeline | Cym I.i.37 | Then old, and fond of issue, took such sorrow | Then old, and fond of yssue, tooke such sorrow |
Cymbeline | Cym I.ii.26 | Than doth become a man. I will remain | Then doth become a man. I will remaine |
Cymbeline | Cym I.ii.62.1 | More sharp than this is. | More sharpe then this is. |
Cymbeline | Cym I.ii.93 | But that my master rather played than fought | But that my Master rather plaid, then fought, |
Cymbeline | Cym I.iii.5 | If my shirt were bloody, then to shift it. Have I hurt | If my Shirt were bloody, then to shift it. / Haue I hurt |
Cymbeline | Cym I.iv.6.1 | Then waved his handkerchief? | Then wau'd his Handkerchiefe? |
Cymbeline | Cym I.iv.7 | Senseless linen, happier therein than I! | Senselesse Linnen, happier therein then I: |
Cymbeline | Cym I.iv.21 | The smallness of a gnat, to air: and then | The smalnesse of a Gnat, to ayre: and then |
Cymbeline | Cym I.iv.32 | T' encounter me with orisons, for then | T'encounter me with Orisons, for then |
Cymbeline | Cym I.v.1 | Believe it sir, I have seen him in Britain: he was then | Beleeue it Sir, I haue seene him in Britaine; hee was then |
Cymbeline | Cym I.v.4 | then have looked on him without the help of admiration, | then haue look'd on him, without the help of Admiration, |
Cymbeline | Cym I.v.7 | You speak of him when he was less furnished than | You speake of him when he was lesse furnish'd, then |
Cymbeline | Cym I.v.13 | he must be weighed rather by her value than his | he must be weighed rather by her valew, then his |
Cymbeline | Cym I.v.16 | And then his banishment. | And then his banishment. |
Cymbeline | Cym I.v.25 | have been often bound for no less than my life. – | haue bin often bound for no lesse then my life. |
Cymbeline | Cym I.v.32 | rather than story him in his own hearing. | rather then story him in his owne hearing. |
Cymbeline | Cym I.v.39 | purpose as then each bore, upon importance of so | purpose, as then each bore, vpon importance of so |
Cymbeline | Cym I.v.41 | By your pardon, sir, I was then a young traveller, | By your pardon Sir, I was then a young Traueller, |
Cymbeline | Cym I.v.42 | rather shunned to go even with what I heard than in | rather shun'd to go euen with what I heard, then in |
Cymbeline | Cym I.v.58 | less attemptable than any the rarest of our ladies in | lesse attemptible then any, the rarest of our Ladies in |
Cymbeline | Cym I.v.76 | More than the world enjoys. | More then the world enioyes. |
Cymbeline | Cym I.v.108 | confidence than her reputation. And to bar your | Confidence, then her Reputation. And to barre your |
Cymbeline | Cym I.v.126 | no more advantage than the opportunity of a | no more aduantage then the opportunitie of a |
Cymbeline | Cym I.vi.39 | Then afterward up higher: but there is | Then afterward vp higher: but there is |
Cymbeline | Cym I.vi.41 | More than the locking up the spirits a time, | More then the locking vp the Spirits a time, |
Cymbeline | Cym I.vi.50 | I'll tell thee on the instant, thou art then | Ile tell thee on the instant, thou art then |
Cymbeline | Cym I.vi.72 | As thou'lt desire: and then myself, I chiefly, | As thou'lt desire: and then my selfe, I cheefely, |
Cymbeline | Cym I.vii.96 | Than to be sure they do – for certainties | Then to be sure they do. For Certainties |
Cymbeline | Cym I.vii.98 | The remedy then born – discover to me | The remedy then borne. Discouer to me |
Cymbeline | Cym I.vii.104 | Fixing it only here; should I – damned then – | Fiering it onely heere, should I (damn'd then) |
Cymbeline | Cym I.vii.108 | With labour – then by-peeping in an eye | With labour:) then by peeping in an eye |
Cymbeline | Cym I.vii.137 | More noble than that runagate to your bed, | More Noble then that runnagate to your bed, |
Cymbeline | Cym I.vii.171 | More than a mortal seeming. Be not angry, | More then a mortall seeming. Be not angrie |
Cymbeline | Cym II.i.3 | pound on't: and then a whoreson jackanapes | pound on't: and then a whorson Iacke-an-Apes, |
Cymbeline | Cym II.i.59 | More hateful than the foul expulsion is | More hatefull then the foule expulsion is |
Cymbeline | Cym II.i.60 | Of thy dear husband, than that horrid act | Of thy deere Husband. Then that horrid Act |
Cymbeline | Cym II.ii.3 | I have read three hours then: mine eyes are weak, | I haue read three houres then: / Mine eyes are weake, |
Cymbeline | Cym II.ii.16 | And whiter than the sheets! That I might touch! | And whiter then the Sheetes: that I might touch, |
Cymbeline | Cym II.ii.40 | Stronger than ever law could make; this secret | Stronger then euer Law could make; this Secret |
Cymbeline | Cym II.iii.18 | then let her consider. | then let her consider. |
Cymbeline | Cym II.iii.43.1 | And then she's yours. | And then she's yours. |
Cymbeline | Cym II.iii.78 | Than some whose tailors are as dear as yours | Then some whose Taylors are as deere as yours, |
Cymbeline | Cym II.iii.110.1 | You felt than make't my boast. | You felt, then make't my boast. |
Cymbeline | Cym II.iii.116 | Yet who than he more mean? – to knit their souls – | (Yet who then he more meane) to knit their soules |
Cymbeline | Cym II.iii.131 | He never can meet more mischance than come | He neuer can meete more mischance, then come |
Cymbeline | Cym II.iii.134 | In my respect, than all the hairs above thee, | In my respect, then all the Heires aboue thee, |
Cymbeline | Cym II.iv.19 | In our not-fearing Britain than have tidings | In our not-fearing-Britaine, then haue tydings |
Cymbeline | Cym II.iv.21 | Are men more ordered than when Julius Caesar | Are men more order'd, then when Iulius Casar |
Cymbeline | Cym II.iv.38.2 | He was expected then, | He was expected then, |
Cymbeline | Cym II.iv.95.2 | Then, if you can, | Then if you can |
Cymbeline | Cym II.iv.112 | Than they are to their virtues, which is nothing. | Then they are to their Vertues, which is nothing: |
Cymbeline | Cym II.iv.120 | More evident than this: for this was stolen. | More euident then this: for this was stolne. |
Cymbeline | Cym III.i.7 | Than in his feats deserving it – for him, | Then in his Feats deseruing it) for him, |
Cymbeline | Cym III.i.16 | Which then they had to take from's, to resume | Which then they had to take from's, to resume |
Cymbeline | Cym III.i.36 | is stronger than it was at that time: and – as I | is stronger then it was at that time: and (as I |
Cymbeline | Cym III.i.4.3 | Say then to Caesar, | Say then to Casar, |
Cymbeline | Cym III.i.64 | Caesar, that hath moe kings his servants than | (Casar, that hath moe Kings his Seruants, then |
Cymbeline | Cym III.i.66 | Receive it from me, then. War and confusion | Receyue it from me then. Warre, and Confusion |
Cymbeline | Cym III.ii.8 | More goddess-like than wife-like, such assaults | More Goddesse-like, then Wife-like; such Assaults |
Cymbeline | Cym III.ii.53 | Glide thither in a day? Then, true Pisanio, | Glide thither in a day? Then true Pisanio, |
Cymbeline | Cym III.ii.73 | Where horses have been nimbler than the sands | Where Horses haue bin nimbler then the Sands |
Cymbeline | Cym III.ii.77 | A riding-suit; no costlier than would fit | A Riding Suit: No costlier then would fit |
Cymbeline | Cym III.iii.14 | And you may then revolve what tales I have told you | And you may then reuolue what Tales, I haue told you, |
Cymbeline | Cym III.iii.21 | Than is the full-winged eagle. O, this life | Then is the full-wing'd Eagle. Oh this life, |
Cymbeline | Cym III.iii.22 | Is nobler than attending for a check: | Is Nobler, then attending for a checke: |
Cymbeline | Cym III.iii.23 | Richer than doing nothing for a robe, | Richer, then doing nothing for a Babe: |
Cymbeline | Cym III.iii.24 | Prouder than rustling in unpaid-for silk: | Prouder, then rustling in vnpayd-for Silke: |
Cymbeline | Cym III.iii.60 | Was not far off: then was I as a tree | Was not farre off: then was I as a Tree |
Cymbeline | Cym III.iii.72 | More pious debts to heaven than in all | More pious debts to Heauen, then in all |
Cymbeline | Cym III.iii.92 | And thus I set my foot on's neck,’ even then | And thus I set my foote on's necke, euen then |
Cymbeline | Cym III.iv.35 | Whose edge is sharper than the sword, whose tongue | Whose edge is sharper then the Sword, whose tongue |
Cymbeline | Cym III.iv.49 | Thou then look'dst like a villain: now, methinks, | Thou then look'dst like a Villaine: now, me thinkes |
Cymbeline | Cym III.iv.53 | And, for I am richer than to hang by th' walls, | And for I am richer then to hang by th'walles, |
Cymbeline | Cym III.iv.97 | Will then be panged by me. Prithee, dispatch: | Will then be pang'd by me. Prythee dispatch, |
Cymbeline | Cym III.iv.102.2 | Do't, and to bed then. | Doo't, and to bed then. |
Cymbeline | Cym III.iv.103.2 | Wherefore then | Wherefore then |
Cymbeline | Cym III.iv.117.2 | Then, madam, | Then Madam, |
Cymbeline | Cym III.iv.120 | But if I were as wise as honest, then | But if I were as wise, as honest, then |
Cymbeline | Cym III.iv.137.1 | Then not in Britain must you bide. | Then not in Britaine must you bide. |
Cymbeline | Cym III.iv.137.2 | Where then? | Where then? |
Cymbeline | Cym III.iv.155.2 | Well then, here's the point: | Well then, heere's the point: |
Cymbeline | Cym III.v.6 | To show less sovereignty than they, must needs | To shew lesse Soueraignty then they, must needs |
Cymbeline | Cym III.v.33 | A thing more made of malice than of duty, | A thing more made of malice, then of duty, |
Cymbeline | Cym III.v.73 | Than lady, ladies, woman, from every one | Then Lady, Ladies, Woman, from euery one |
Cymbeline | Cym III.v.99.2 | Then, sir: | Then Sir: |
Cymbeline | Cym III.v.137 | than my noble and natural person; together with | then my Noble and naturall person; together with |
Cymbeline | Cym III.v.140 | eyes; there shall she see my valour, which will then | eyes; there shall she see my valour, which wil then |
Cymbeline | Cym III.vi.13 | Is sorer than to lie for need: and falsehood | Is sorer, then to lye for Neede: and Falshood |
Cymbeline | Cym III.vi.14 | Is worse in kings than beggars. My dear lord, | Is worse in Kings, then Beggers. My deere Lord, |
Cymbeline | Cym III.vi.24 | Take, or lend. Ho! No answer? Then I'll enter. | Take, or lend. Hoa? No answer? Then Ile enter. |
Cymbeline | Cym III.vii.17 | No elder than a boy! | No elder then a Boy. |
Cymbeline | Cym III.vii.49 | Had been my father's sons, then had my prize | Had bin my Fathers Sonnes, then had my prize |
Cymbeline | Cym III.vii.55 | That had a court no bigger than this cave, | That had a Court no bigger then this Caue, |
Cymbeline | Cym IV.ii.73 | More slavish did I ne'er than answering | More slauish did I ne're, then answering |
Cymbeline | Cym IV.ii.84.2 | Hence, then, and thank | Hence then, and thanke |
Cymbeline | Cym IV.ii.105 | Which then he wore: the snatches in his voice, | Which then he wore: the snatches in his voice, |
Cymbeline | Cym IV.ii.126 | Protects not us, then why should we be tender, | Protects not vs, then why should we be tender, |
Cymbeline | Cym IV.ii.143 | Or they so suffering: then on good ground we fear, | Or they so suffering: then on good ground we feare, |
Cymbeline | Cym 1IV.ii.145.1 | More perilous than the head. | More perillous then the head. |
Cymbeline | Cym IV.ii.201.1 | Than have seen this. | Then haue seene this. |
Cymbeline | Cym IV.ii.242.1 | Than priests and fanes that lie. | Then Priests, and Phanes that lye. |
Cymbeline | Cym IV.ii.242.2 | We'll speak it then. | Wee'l speake it then. |
Cymbeline | Cym IV.ii.257.1 | Come on then, and remove him. | Come on then, and remoue him. |
Cymbeline | Cym IV.ii.360 | He'll then instruct us of this body. Young one, | Hee'l then instruct vs of this body: Young one, |
Cymbeline | Cym IV.ii.364 | That – otherwise than noble Nature did – | That (otherwise then noble Nature did) |
Cymbeline | Cym IV.ii.375 | Thou mov'st no less with thy complaining than | Thou mou'st no lesse with thy complaining, then |
Cymbeline | Cym IV.ii.386 | Than thine own worth prefer thee: go with me. | Then thine owne worth preferre thee: Go with me. |
Cymbeline | Cym IV.ii.395 | And rather father thee than master thee. | And rather Father thee, then Master thee: |
Cymbeline | Cym IV.iii.30 | Than what you hear of. Come more, for more you're ready: | Then what you heare of. Come more, for more you're ready: |
Cymbeline | Cym IV.iv.23 | Though Cloten then but young – you see, not wore him | (Though Cloten then but young) you see, not wore him |
Cymbeline | Cym IV.iv.30.2 | Than be so, | Then be so, |
Cymbeline | Cym V.i.4 | Must murder wives much better than themselves | Must murther Wiues much better then themselues |
Cymbeline | Cym V.i.30 | More valour in me than my habits show. | More valour in me, then my habits show. |
Cymbeline | Cym V.ii.1.3 | poor soldier. They march over, and go out. Then enter again, in | poore Souldier. They march ouer, and goe out. Then enter againe in |
Cymbeline | Cym V.ii.1.5 | Iachimo, and then leaves him | Iachimo, and then leaues him. |
Cymbeline | Cym V.ii.11.1 | The battle continues, the Britons fly, Cymbeline is taken: then enter | The Battaile continues, the Britaines fly, Cymbeline is taken: Then enter |
Cymbeline | Cym V.ii.14.2 | and exeunt. Then enter Lucius, Iachimo, and Innogen | and Exeunt. Then enter Lucius, Iachimo, and Imogen. |
Cymbeline | Cym V.iii.9 | More plentiful than tools to do't, struck down | More plentifull, then Tooles to doo't: strooke downe |
Cymbeline | Cym V.iii.20 | The country base than to commit such slaughter, | The Country base, then to commit such slaughter, |
Cymbeline | Cym V.iii.22 | Than those for preservation cased, or shame – | Then those for preseruation cas'd, or shame) |
Cymbeline | Cym V.iii.39 | Upon the pikes o'th' hunters. Then began | Vpon the Pikes o'th'Hunters. Then beganne |
Cymbeline | Cym V.iii.55 | Than to work any. Will you rhyme upon't, | Then to worke any. Will you Rime vpon't, |
Cymbeline | Cym V.iii.72 | Sweet words; or hath moe ministers than we | Sweet words; or hath moe ministers then we |
Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.5 | Than one that's sick o'th' gout, since he had rather | Then one that's sicke o'th'Gowt, since he had rather |
Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.6 | Groan so in perpetuity than be cured | Groane so in perpetuity, then be cur'd |
Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.9 | More than my shanks and wrists: you good gods, give me | More then my shanks, & wrists: you good Gods giue me |
Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.11 | Then free for ever. Is't enough I am sorry? | Then free for euer. Is't enough I am sorry? |
Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.14 | I cannot do it better than in gyves, | I cannot do it better then in Gyues, |
Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.15 | Desired more than constrained: to satisfy, | Desir'd, more then constrain'd, to satisfie |
Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.17 | No stricter render of me than my all. | No stricter render of me, then my All. |
Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.18 | I know you are more clement than vile men, | I know you are more clement then vilde men, |
Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.30.4 | before them. Then, after other music, follow the two young Leonati | before them. Then after other Musicke, followes the two young Leonati |
Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.39 | Whose father then – as men report | Whose Father then (as men report, |
Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.77 | Then, Jupiter, thou king of gods, | Then Iupiter, yu King of Gods, |
Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.117 | More sweet than our blest fields: his royal bird | More sweet then our blest Fields: his Royall Bird |
Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.135 | Nobler than that it covers. Let thy effects | Nobler then that it couers. Let thy effects |
Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.143 | the old stock, and freshly grow, then shall | the old Stocke, and freshly grow, then shall |
Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.173 | I am merrier to die than thou art to live. | I am merrier to dye, then thou art to liue. |
Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.180 | Your death has eyes in's head then: I have | Your death has eyes in's head then: I haue |
Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.197 | I'll be hanged then. | Ile be hang'd then. |
Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.198 | Thou shalt be then freer than a gaoler; no bolts for | Thou shalt be then freer then a Gaoler; no bolts for |
Cymbeline | Cym V.v.27.2 | Who worse than a physician | Who worse then a Physitian |
Cymbeline | Cym V.v.113 | Than I to your highness, who being born your vassal, | Then I to your Highnesse, who being born your vassaile |
Cymbeline | Cym V.v.152 | Than die ere I hear more: strive, man, and speak. | Then dye ere I heare more: striue man, and speake. |
Cymbeline | Cym V.v.176 | And then a mind put in't, either our brags | And then a minde put in't, either our bragges |
Cymbeline | Cym V.v.183 | Pieces of gold, 'gainst this – which he then wore | Peeces of Gold, 'gainst this, which then he wore |
Cymbeline | Cym V.v.188 | Than I did truly find her, stakes this ring, | Then I did truly finde her, stakes this Ring, |
Cymbeline | Cym V.v.217 | By being worse than they. I am Posthumus, | By being worse then they. I am Posthumus, |
Cymbeline | Cym V.v.219 | That caused a lesser villain than myself, | That caus'd a lesser villaine then my selfe, |
Cymbeline | Cym V.v.225 | Be villainy less than 'twas. O Innogen! | Be villany lesse then 'twas. Oh Imogen! |
Cymbeline | Cym V.v.280 | Then in my pocket, which directed him | Then in my pocket, which directed him |
Cymbeline | Cym V.v.302 | This man is better than the man he slew, | This man is better then the man he slew, |
Cymbeline | Cym V.v.304 | More of thee merited than a band of Clotens | More of thee merited, then a Band of Clotens |
Cymbeline | Cym V.v.315.2 | Have at it then, by leave: | Haue at it then, by leaue |
Cymbeline | Cym V.v.328 | Then spare not the old father. Mighty sir, | Then spare not the old Father. Mighty Sir, |
Cymbeline | Cym V.v.345 | For that which I did then. Beaten for loyalty | For that which I did then. Beaten for Loyaltie, |
Cymbeline | Cym V.v.355 | Unlike than this thou tell'st. I lost my children: | Vnlike, then this thou tell'st. I lost my Children, |
Cymbeline | Cym V.v.411 | The purpose I then followed. That I was he, | The purpose I then follow'd. That I was he, |
Cymbeline | Cym V.v.415 | As then your force did. Take that life, beseech you, | As then your force did. Take that life, beseech you |
Cymbeline | Cym V.v.441 | jointed to the old stock, and freshly grow, then | ioynted to the old Stocke, and freshly grow, then |
Hamlet | Ham I.i.39 | The bell then beating one – | The Bell then beating one. |
Hamlet | Ham I.i.54 | Is not this something more than fantasy? | Is not this something more then Fantasie? |
Hamlet | Ham I.i.149 | And then it started, like a guilty thing | And then it started, like a guilty thing |
Hamlet | Ham I.i.162 | And then, they say, no spirit dares stir abroad; | And then (they say) no Spirit can walke abroad, |
Hamlet | Ham I.i.163 | The nights are wholesome; then no planets strike; | The nights are wholsome, then no Planets strike, |
Hamlet | Ham I.ii.37 | To business with the King, more than the scope | To businesse with the King, more then the scope |
Hamlet | Ham I.ii.49 | Than is the throne of Denmark to thy father. | Then is the Throne of Denmarke to thy Father. |
Hamlet | Ham I.ii.65 | A little more than kin, and less than kind! | A little more then kin, and lesse then kinde. |
Hamlet | Ham I.ii.111 | Than that which dearest father bears his son | Then that which deerest Father beares his Sonne, |
Hamlet | Ham I.ii.153 | Than I to Hercules. Within a month, | Then I to Hercules. Within a Moneth? |
Hamlet | Ham I.ii.218 | But even then the morning cock crew loud, | But euen then, the Morning Cocke crew lowd; |
Hamlet | Ham I.ii.229 | Then saw you not his face? | Then saw you not his face? |
Hamlet | Ham I.ii.232 | A countenance more in sorrow than in anger. | A countenance more in sorrow then in anger. |
Hamlet | Ham I.ii.257 | Till then sit still, my soul. Foul deeds will rise, | Till then sit still my soule; foule deeds will rise, |
Hamlet | Ham I.iii.24 | Whereof he is the head. Then, if he says he loves you, | Whereof he is the Head. Then if he sayes he loues you, |
Hamlet | Ham I.iii.28 | Than the main voice of Denmark goes withal. | Then the maine voyce of Denmarke goes withall. |
Hamlet | Ham I.iii.29 | Then weigh what loss your honour may sustain | Then weigh what losse your Honour may sustaine, |
Hamlet | Ham I.iii.43 | Be wary then. Best safety lies in fear. | Be wary then, best safety lies in feare; |
Hamlet | Ham I.iii.80 | Thou canst not then be false to any man. | Thou canst not then be false to any man. |
Hamlet | Ham I.iii.118 | Giving more light than heat, extinct in both | Giuing more light then heate; extinct in both, |
Hamlet | Ham I.iii.123 | Than a command to parle. For Lord Hamlet, | Then a command to parley. For Lord Hamlet, |
Hamlet | Ham I.iii.126 | Than may be given you. In few, Ophelia, | Then may be giuen you. In few, Ophelia, |
Hamlet | Ham I.iv.5 | Indeed? I heard it not. It then draws near the season | Indeed I heard it not: then it drawes neere the season, |
Hamlet | Ham I.iv.16 | More honoured in the breach than the observance. | More honour'd in the breach, then the obseruance. |
Hamlet | Ham I.iv.63 | It will not speak. Then I will follow it. | It will not speake: then will I follow it. |
Hamlet | Ham I.v.32 | And duller shouldst thou be than the fat weed | And duller should'st thou be then the fat weede |
Hamlet | Ham I.v.121 | How say you then? Would heart of man once think it? | How say you then, would heart of man once think it? |
Hamlet | Ham I.v.156 | Hic et ubique? Then we'll shift our ground. | Hic & vbique? Then wee'l shift for grownd, |
Hamlet | Ham I.v.167 | Than are dreamt of in your philosophy. | Then are dream't of in our Philosophy. |
Hamlet | Ham II.i.12 | Than your particular demands will touch it. | Then your particular demands will touch it, |
Hamlet | Ham II.i.49 | And then, sir, does 'a this – 'a does – What | And then Sir does he this? / He does: what |
Hamlet | Ham II.i.57 | Or then, or then, with such or such, and, as you say, | Or then or then, with such and such; and as you say, |
Hamlet | Ham II.i.88 | Then goes he to the length of all his arm, | Then goes he to the length of all his arme; |
Hamlet | Ham II.i.119 | More grief to hide than hate to utter love. | More greefe to hide, then hate to vtter loue. |
Hamlet | Ham II.ii.8 | More than his father's death, that thus hath put him | More then his Fathers death, that thus hath put him |
Hamlet | Ham II.ii.29.1 | Than to entreaty. | Then to Entreatie. |
Hamlet | Ham II.ii.100 | Mad let us grant him then. And now remains | Mad let vs grant him then: and now remaines |
Hamlet | Ham II.ii.142 | This must not be.’ And then I prescripts gave her, | This must not be: and then, I Precepts gaue her, |
Hamlet | Ham II.ii.147 | Fell into a sadness, then into a fast, | Fell into a Sadnesse, then into a Fast, |
Hamlet | Ham II.ii.163 | Be you and I behind an arras then. | Be you and I behinde an Arras then, |
Hamlet | Ham II.ii.176 | Then I would you were so honest a man. | Then I would you were so honest a man. |
Hamlet | Ham II.ii.231 | Then you live about her waist, or in the middle | Then you liue about her waste, or in the middle |
Hamlet | Ham II.ii.238 | Then is doomsday near. But your news is not | Then is Doomesday neere: But your newes is not |
Hamlet | Ham II.ii.244 | Then is the world one. | Then is the World one. |
Hamlet | Ham II.ii.248 | Why, then 'tis none to you. For there is nothing | Why then 'tis none to you; for there is nothing |
Hamlet | Ham II.ii.251 | Why, then your ambition makes it one. | Why then your Ambition makes it one: |
Hamlet | Ham II.ii.262 | Then are our beggars bodies, and our monarchs | Then are our Beggers bodies; and our Monarchs |
Hamlet | Ham II.ii.290 | Nay then, I have an eye of you. – If you | Nay then I haue an eye of you: if you |
Hamlet | Ham II.ii.302 | appeareth nothing to me than a foul and pestilent congregation | appeares no other thing to mee, then a foule and pestilent congregation |
Hamlet | Ham II.ii.313 | Why did ye laugh then, when I said ‘ Man | Why did you laugh, when I said, Man |
Hamlet | Ham II.ii.346 | longer than they can sing? Will they not say afterwards, | longer then they can sing? Will they not say afterwards |
Hamlet | Ham II.ii.366 | something in this more than natural, if philosophy could | something in this more then Naturall, if Philosophie could |
Hamlet | Ham II.ii.370 | hands. Come then. Th' appurtenance of welcome is | hands, come: The appurtenance of Welcome, is |
Hamlet | Ham II.ii.374 | than yours. You are welcome. But my uncle-father | then yours. You are welcome: but my Vnckle Father, |
Hamlet | Ham II.ii.387 | 'twas then, indeed. | 'twas so indeed. |
Hamlet | Ham II.ii.394 | Then came each actor on his ass – | Then can each Actor on his Asse--- |
Hamlet | Ham II.ii.413 | What follows then, my lord? | What followes then, my Lord? |
Hamlet | Ham II.ii.416 | and then you know, | and then you know, |
Hamlet | Ham II.ii.425 | heaven than when I saw you last by the altitude of a | Heauen then when I saw you last, by the altitude of a |
Hamlet | Ham II.ii.472 | Th' unnerved father falls. Then senseless Ilium, | Th'vnnerued Father fals. Then senselesse Illium, |
Hamlet | Ham II.ii.489 | With less remorse than Pyrrhus' bleeding sword | With lesse remorse then Pyrrhus bleeding sword |
Hamlet | Ham II.ii.510 | But if the gods themselves did see her then, | But if the Gods themselues did see her then, |
Hamlet | Ham II.ii.524 | than their ill report while you live. | then their ill report while you liued. |
Hamlet | Ham II.ii.602 | More relative than this. The play's the thing | More Relatiue then this: The Play's the thing, |
Hamlet | Ham III.i.53 | Than is my deed to my most painted word. | Then is my deede, to my most painted word. |
Hamlet | Ham III.i.82 | Than fly to others that we know not of? | Then flye to others that we know not of. |
Hamlet | Ham III.i.99 | As made the things more rich. Their perfume lost, | As made the things more rich, then perfume left: |
Hamlet | Ham III.i.110 | than with honesty? | then your Honestie? |
Hamlet | Ham III.i.112 | transform honesty from what it is to a bawd than the | transforme Honestie from what it is, to a Bawd, then the |
Hamlet | Ham III.i.125 | ambitious, with more offences at my beck than I | Ambitious, with more offences at my becke, then I |
Hamlet | Ham III.ii.38 | your clowns speak no more than is set down for them. | your Clownes, speake no more then is set downe for them. |
Hamlet | Ham III.ii.42 | then to be considered. That's villainous, and shows a | then to be considered: that's Villanous, & shewes a |
Hamlet | Ham III.ii.43 | most pitiful ambition in the fool that uses it. And then | most pittifull Ambition in the Foole that vses it. |
Hamlet | Ham III.ii.138 | So long? Nay then, let the devil wear black, for | So long? Nay then let the Diuel weare blacke, for |
Hamlet | Ham III.ii.140 | ago, and not forgotten yet? Then there's hope a great | ago, and not forgotten yet? Then there's hope, a great |
Hamlet | Ham III.ii.142 | Lady, 'a must build churches then, or else shall 'a suffer | byrlady he must builde Churches then: or else shall he suffer |
Hamlet | Ham III.ii.302 | Why then, belike he likes it not, perdy. | Why then belike he likes it not perdie. |
Hamlet | Ham III.ii.333 | Then thus she says: your behaviour hath | Then thus she sayes: your behauior hath |
Hamlet | Ham III.ii.378 | on than a pipe? Call me what instrument you will, | on, then a Pipe? Call me what Instrument you will, |
Hamlet | Ham III.ii.390 | Then I will come to my mother by and by. | Then will I come to my Mother, by and by: |
Hamlet | Ham III.iii.31 | 'Tis meet that some more audience than a mother, | 'Tis meete that some more audience then a Mother, |
Hamlet | Ham III.iii.44 | Were thicker than itself with brother's blood, | Were thicker then it selfe with Brothers blood, |
Hamlet | Ham III.iii.50 | Or pardoned being down? Then I'll look up. | Or pardon'd being downe? Then Ile looke vp, |
Hamlet | Ham III.iii.64 | To give in evidence. What then? What rests? | To giue in euidence. What then? What rests? |
Hamlet | Ham III.iii.84 | 'Tis heavy with him. And am I then revenged, | 'Tis heauie with him: and am I then reueng'd, |
Hamlet | Ham III.iii.93 | Then trip him, that his heels may kick at heaven, | Then trip him, that his heeles may kicke at Heauen, |
Hamlet | Ham III.iv.18 | Nay, then I'll set those to you that can speak. | Nay, then Ile set those to you that can speake. |
Hamlet | Ham III.iv.130 | My stern effects. Then what I have to do | My sterne effects: then what I haue to do, |
Hamlet | Ham IV.iv.23 | Why, then the Polack never will defend it. | |
Hamlet | Ham IV.iv.56 | When honour's at the stake. How stand I then, | |
Hamlet | Ham IV.v.52 | Then up he rose and donned his clothes, | Then vp he rose, & don'd his clothes, |
Hamlet | Ham IV.v.103 | Than young Laertes, in a riotous head, | Then young Laertes, in a Riotous head, |
Hamlet | Ham IV.v.146.2 | Will you know them then? | Will you know them then. |
Hamlet | Ham IV.v.175 | This nothing's more than matter. | This nothings more then matter. |
Hamlet | Ham IV.vii.121 | And then this ‘ should ’ is like a spendthrift sigh, | |
Hamlet | Ham IV.vii.125.1 | More than in words? | More then in words? |
Hamlet | Ham IV.vii.183.2 | Alas, then she is drowned? | Alas then, is she drown'd? |
Hamlet | Ham V.i.28 | drown or hang themselves more than their even-Christian. | drowne or hang themselues, more then their euen Christian. |
Hamlet | Ham V.i.41 | What is he that builds stronger than | What is he that builds stronger then |
Hamlet | Ham V.i.48 | built stronger than the church. Argal, the gallows may | built stronger then the Church: Argall, the Gallowes may |
Hamlet | Ham V.i.50 | Who builds stronger than a mason, a | Who builds stronger then a Mason, a |
Hamlet | Ham V.i.107 | double ones too, than the length and breadth of a pair | double ones too, then the length and breadth of a paire |
Hamlet | Ham V.i.130 | What woman then? | What woman then? |
Hamlet | Ham V.i.166 | Why he more than another? | Why he, more then another? |
Hamlet | Ham V.i.295 | Till then in patience our proceeding be. | Till then, in patience our proceeding be. |
Hamlet | Ham V.ii.6 | Worse than the mutines in the bilboes. Rashly, | Worse then the mutines in the Bilboes, rashly, |
Hamlet | Ham V.ii.74 | And a man's life's no more than to say ‘one'. | and a mans life's no more / Then to say one: |
Hamlet | Ham V.ii.157 | it might be ‘ hangers ’ till then. But on! Six Barbary | it might be Hangers till then; but on sixe Barbary |
Hamlet | Ham V.ii.230 | Then Hamlet does it not. Hamlet denies it. | Then Hamlet does it not, Hamlet denies it: |
Hamlet | Ham V.ii.231 | Who does it then? His madness. If't be so, | Who does it then? His Madnesse? If't be so, |
Hamlet | Ham V.ii.267 | Richer than that which four successive kings | Richer then that, which foure successiue Kings |
Hamlet | Ham V.ii.316 | Then, venom, to thy work. | Then venome to thy worke. |
Hamlet | Ham V.ii.335 | I am more an antique Roman than a Dane. | I am more an Antike Roman then a Dane: |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.i.30 | Therefore we meet not now. Then let me hear | Therefore we meete not now. Then let me heare |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.i.47 | It seems then that the tidings of this broil | It seemes then, that the tidings of this broile, |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.i.89 | Then would I have his Harry, and he mine. | Then would I haue his Harry, and he mine: |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.i.106 | Than out of anger can be uttered. | Then out of anger can be vttered. |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.ii.22 | Well, how then? Come, roundly, roundly. | Well, how then? Come roundly, roundly. |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.ii.23 | Marry then, sweet wag, when thou art King let | Marry then, sweet Wagge, when thou art King, let |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.ii.94 | should speak truly, little better than one of the wicked. | shold speake truly) little better then one of the wicked. |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.ii.119 | Then art thou damned for keeping thy word with | Then art thou damn'd for keeping thy word with |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.ii.140 | Well then, once in my days I'll be a | Well then, once in my dayes Ile be a |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.ii.144 | By the Lord, I'll be a traitor then, when thou | Ile be a Traitor then, when thou |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.ii.169 | pleasure to fail – and then will they adventure upon | pleasure to faile; and then will they aduenture vppon |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.ii.183 | he fight longer than he sees reason, I'll forswear arms. | he fight longer then he sees reason, Ile forswear Armes. |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.ii.208 | By how much better than my word I am, | By how much better then my word I am, |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.ii.213 | Than that which hath no foil to set it off. | Then that which hath no foyle to set it off. |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.iii.6 | Mighty, and to be feared, than my condition, | Mighty, and to be fear'd, then my condition |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.iii.48 | I then, all smarting with my wounds being cold, | I then, all-smarting, with my wounds being cold, |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.iii.70 | Whate'er Lord Harry Percy then had said | What euer Harry Percie then had said, |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.iii.75 | What then he said, so he unsay it now. | What then he said, so he vnsay it now. |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.iii.84 | Hath lately married. Shall our coffers then | Hath lately married. Shall our Coffers then, |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.iii.103 | Who then affrighted with their bloody looks | Who then affrighted with their bloody lookes, |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.iii.111 | Then let not him be slandered with revolt. | Then let him not be sland'red with Reuolt. |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.iii.140 | Of my wife's brother, then his cheek looked pale, | Of my Wiues Brother, then his cheeke look'd pale, |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.iii.146 | And then it was, when the unhappy King – | And then it was, when the vnhappy King |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.iii.153 | But soft, I pray you, did King Richard then | But soft I pray you; did King Richard then |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.iii.156 | Nay then, I cannot blame his cousin King | Nay then I cannot blame his Cousin King, |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.iii.196 | To rouse a lion than to start a hare! | To rowze a Lyon, then to start a Hare. |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.iii.248 | This fawning greyhound then did proffer me! | This fawning Grey-hound then did proffer me, |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.iii.255 | Then once more to your Scottish prisoners. | Then once more to your Scottish Prisoners. |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.iii.274 | And then the power of Scotland, and of York, | And then the power of Scotland, and of Yorke |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.iii.287 | Than I by letters shall direct your course. | Then I by Letters shall direct your course |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.i.18 | a king Christian could be better bit than I have been | King in Christendome, could be better bit, then I haue beene |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.i.21 | jordan, and then we leak in your chimney, and your | Iourden, and then we leake in your Chimney: and your |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.i.52 | purses than giving direction doth from labouring. Thou | Purses, then giuing direction, doth from labouring. Thou |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.i.78 | hold in, such as will strike sooner than speak, and speak | holde in, such as will strike sooner then speake; and speake |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.i.79 | sooner than drink, and drink sooner than pray. And yet, | sooner then drinke, and drinke sooner then pray: and yet |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.i.90 | beholding to the night than to fern-seed for your | beholding to the Night, then to the Fernseed, for your |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.ii.60 | from your encounter, then they light on us. | from your encounter, then they light on vs. |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.ii.96 | Come my masters, let us share, and then to | Come my Masters, let vs share, and then to |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iii.4 | He could be contented! Why is he not then? In respect | He could be contented: Why is he not then? in respect |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iii.6 | loves his own barn better than he loves our house. Let | loues his owne Barne better then he loues our house. Let |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iii.100 | Well, do not then, for since you love me not | Well, do not then. For since you loue me not, |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iii.111 | Than Harry Percy's wife. Constant you are, | Then Harry Percies wife. Constant you are, |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.16 | they cry ‘ Hem!’ and bid you ‘ Play it off!’ To conclude, | then they cry hem, and bid you play it off. To conclude, |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.24 | life than ‘ Eight shillings and sixpence,’ and ‘ You are | life, then Eight shillings and six pence, and, You are |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.71 | Why then your brown bastard is your only | Why then your browne Bastard is your onely |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.82 | Let them alone awhile, and then open the | Let them alone awhile, and then open the |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.98 | words than a parrot, and yet the son of a woman! His | words then a Parret, and yet the sonne of a Woman. His |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.118 | tale of the sun's? If thou didst, then behold that | Tale of the Sunne? If thou didst, then behold that |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.122 | a coward is worse than a cup of sack with lime in it. A | a Coward is worse then a Cup of Sack with lime. A |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.125 | the face of the earth, then am I a shotten herring. There | the face of the earth, then am I a shotten Herring: there |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.166 | speak more or less than truth, they are villains and the | speake more or lesse then truth, they are villaines, and the |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.177 | And unbound the rest, and then come in the | And vnbound the rest, and then come in the |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.183 | Jack, then am I no two-legg'd creature. | Iack, then am I no two-legg'd Creature. |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.244 | Well, breathe awhile, and then to it again, | Well, breath a-while, and then to't againe: |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.250 | plain tale shall put you down. Then did we two set on | plaine Tale shall put you downe. Then did we two, set on |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.257 | then say it was in fight! What trick, what device, what | then say it was in fight. What trick? what deuice? what |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.303 | to make them bleed, and then to beslubber our garments | to make them bleed, and then to beslubber our garments |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.344 | Why, what a rascal art thou then, to praise | Why, what a Rascall art thou then, to prayse |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.354 | Why then, it is like if there come a hot June, | Then 'tis like, if there come a hot Sunne, |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.398 | of thy nether lip, that doth warrant me. If then thou be | of thy nether Lippe, that doth warrant me. If then thou be |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.417 | virtue in his looks. If then the tree may be known by the | Vertue in his Lookes. If then the Tree may be knowne by the |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.418 | fruit, as the fruit by the tree, then peremptorily I speak it, | Fruit, as the Fruit by the Tree, then peremptorily I speake it, |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.453 | But to say I know more harm in him than in myself were to | But to say, I know more harme in him then in my selfe, were to |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.454 | say more than I know. That he is old, the more the pity, his | say more then I know. That hee is olde (the more the pittie) his |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.458 | sin, then many an old host that I know is damned. If to be | sinne, then many an olde Hoste that I know, is damn'd: if to be |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.459 | fat be to be hated, then Pharaoh's lean kine are to be loved. | fat, be to be hated, then Pharaohs leane Kine are to be loued. |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.i.22 | O, then the earth shook to see the heavens on fire, | Oh, then the Earth shooke To see the Heauens on fire, |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.i.110 | And then he runs straight and even. | And then he runnes straight and euen. |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.i.115 | Let me not understand you then, speak it in Welsh. | Let me not vnderstand you then, speake it in Welsh. |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.i.124 | Than one of these same metre ballad-mongers. | Then one of these same Meeter Ballad-mongers: |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.i.155 | Worse than a smoky house. I had rather live | Worse then a smoakie House. I had rather liue |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.i.157 | Than feed on cates and have him talk to me | Then feede on Cates, and haue him talke to me, |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.i.205 | Nay, if you melt, then will she run mad. | Nay, if thou melt, then will she runne madde. |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.i.227 | Then should you be nothing but musical, | Then would you be nothing but Musicall, |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.i.233 | Then be still. | Then be still. |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.i.246 | As if thou never walkest further than Finsbury. | As if thou neuer walk'st further then Finsbury. |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.i.259.1 | And then to horse immediately. | And then to Horse immediately. |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.ii.50 | And then I stole all courtesy from heaven, | And then I stole all Courtesie from Heauen, |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.ii.73 | More than a little is by much too much. | More then a little, is by much too much. |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.ii.94 | As thou art to this hour was Richard then | As thou art to this houre, was Richard then, |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.ii.96 | And even as I was then is Percy now. | And euen as I was then, is Percy now: |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.ii.99 | Than thou the shadow of succession. | Then thou, the shadow of Succession; |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.ii.103 | And being no more in debt to years than thou | And being no more in debt to yeeres, then thou, |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.iii.6 | of heart shortly, and then I shall have no strength to | of heart shortly, and then I shall haue no strength to |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.iii.111 | There's no more faith in thee than in a stewed | There's no more faith in thee then a stu'de |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.iii.112 | prune, nor no more truth in thee than in a drawn fox – | Prune; nor no more truth in thee, then in a drawne Fox: |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.iii.165 | have more flesh than another man, and therefore more | haue more flesh then another man, and therefore more |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.iii.166 | frailty. You confess then, you picked my pocket? | frailty. You confesse then you pickt my Pocket? |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 IV.i.8 | In my heart's love hath no man than yourself. | In my hearts loue, hath no man then your Selfe. |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 IV.i.27 | His health was never better worth than now. | His health was neuer better worth then now. |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 IV.i.45 | Seems more than we shall find it. Were it good | Seemes more then we shall finde it. / Were it good, |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 IV.i.79 | Than if the Earl were here. For men must think | Then if the Earle were here: for men must thinke, |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 IV.i.111 | No more, no more! Worse than the sun in March, | No more, no more, / Worse then the Sunne in March: |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 IV.ii.19 | report of a caliver worse than a struck fowl or a hurt wild | report of a Caliuer, worse then a struck-Foole, or a hurt wilde- |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 IV.ii.21 | with hearts in their bellies no bigger than pins' heads, | with Hearts in their Bellyes no bigger then Pinnes heads, |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 IV.ii.30 | dishonourable-ragged than an old fazed ancient. And | dis-honorable ragged, then an old-fac'd Ancient; and |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 IV.ii.52 | Faith, Sir John, 'tis more than time that | 'Faith, Sir Iohn, 'tis more then time that |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 IV.iii.2.1 | You give him then advantage. | You giue him then aduantage. |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 IV.iii.75 | Steps me a little higher than his vow | Step me a little higher then his Vow |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 IV.iii.89.2 | Then to the point. | Then to the point. |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.i.7 | Then with the losers let it sympathize, | Then with the losers let it sympathize, |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.i.27 | You have not sought it? How comes it, then? | You haue not sought it: how comes it then? |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.i.44 | Nor claim no further than your new-fallen right, | Nor claime no further, then your new-falne right, |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.i.131 | come on, how then? Can honour set to a leg? No. Or | come on? How then? Can Honour set too a legge? No: or |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.i.133 | Honour hath no skill in surgery, then? No. What is | Honour hath no skill in Surgerie, then? No. What is |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.i.137 | hear it? No. 'Tis insensible, then? Yea, to the dead. | heare it? No. Is it insensible then? yea, to the dead. |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.ii.3.2 | Then are we all undone. | Then we are all vndone. |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.ii.58 | Making you ever better than his praise | Making you euer better then his praise, |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.iii.2.1 | Then enter Douglas, and Sir Walter Blunt, disguised | Then enter Dowglas, and Sir Walter Blunt. |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.iii.3.2 | Know then my name is Douglas, | Know then my name is Dowglas, |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.iii.14.2 | Then enter Hotspur | then enters Hotspur. |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.iii.35 | more weight than mine own bowels. I have led my | more weight then mine owne Bowelles. I haue led my |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.iv.21 | With lustier maintenance than I did look for | With lustier maintenance then I did looke for |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.iv.60.2 | Why, then I see | Why then I see |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.iv.78 | Than those proud titles thou hast won of me. | Then those proud Titles thou hast wonne of me, |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.iv.79 | They wound my thoughts worse than thy sword my flesh. | They wound my thoghts worse, then the sword my flesh: |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.iv.109 | Till then in blood by noble Percy lie. | Till then, in blood, by Noble Percie lye. |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.iv.137 | if I be not Jack Falstaff, then am I a Jack. There is | if I be not Iacke Falstaffe, then am I a Iacke: There is |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.v.25 | Then, brother John of Lancaster, to you | Then Brother Iohn of Lancaster, / To you |
Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.v.34 | Then this remains, that we divide our power. | Then this remaines: that we diuide our Power. |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 induction.39 | Than they have learnt of me. From Rumour's tongues | Then they haue learn'd of Me. From Rumours Tongues, |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 induction.40 | They bring smooth comforts false, worse than true wrongs. | They bring smooth-Comforts-false, worse then True-wrongs. |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.i.32 | More than he haply may retail from me. | More then he (haply) may retaile from me. |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.i.56.1 | Give then such instances of loss? | Giue then such instances of Losse? |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.i.69 | Is apter than thy tongue to tell thy errand. | Is apter then thy Tongue, to tell thy Errand. |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.i.124 | Than did our soldiers, aiming at their safety, | Then did our Soldiers (ayming at their safety) |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.i.125 | Fly from the field. Then was the noble Worcester | Fly from the field. Then was that Noble Worcester |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.i.171 | More likely to fall in than to get o'er. | More likely to fall in, then to get o're: |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.i.177 | The stiff-borne action. What hath then befallen, | The stiffe-borne Action: What hath then befalne? |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.i.179 | More than that being which was like to be? | More then that Being, which was like to be? |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.i.187 | 'Tis more than time. And, my most noble lord, | 'Tis more then time: And (my most Noble Lord) |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.ii.5 | more diseases than he knew for. | more diseases then he knew for. |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.ii.8 | to invent anything that intends to laughter more than I | to inuent any thing that tends to laughter, more then I |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.ii.13 | for any other reason than to set me off, why then I have | for any other reason, then to set mee off, why then I haue |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.ii.15 | fitter to be worn in my cap than to wait at my heels. I | fitter to be worne in my cap, then to wait at my heeles. I |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.ii.21 | my hand than he shall get one off his cheek; and yet he | my hand, then he shall get one on his cheeke: yet he |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.ii.31 | than Bardolph. He would not take his bond and | then Bardolfe: he wold not take his Bond & |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.ii.36 | and then stand upon security! The whoreson smoothy- | and then stand vpon Security? The horson smooth- |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.ii.39 | them in honest taking up, then they must stand upon | them in honest Taking-vp, then they must stand vpon |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.ii.76 | to beg than to be on the worst side, were it worse than | to begge, then to be on the worst side, were it worse then |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.ii.82 | I pray you, sir, then set your knighthood and | I pray you (Sir) then set your Knighthood and |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.ii.84 | lie in your throat if you say I am any other than an | lye in your throat, if you say I am any other then an |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.ii.135 | As I was then advised by my learned counsel | As I was then aduised by my learned Councel, |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.ii.231 | man can no more separate age and covetousness than 'a | man can no more separate Age and Couetousnesse, then he |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.iii.15 | The question then, Lord Hastings, standeth thus – | The question then (Lord Hastings) standeth thus |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.iii.30 | Much smaller than the smallest of his thoughts, | Much smaller, then the smallest of his Thoughts, |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.iii.42 | We first survey the plot, then draw the model, | We first suruey the Plot, then draw the Modell, |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.iii.44 | Then must we rate the cost of the erection, | Then must we rate the cost of the Erection, |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.iii.46 | What do we then but draw anew the model | What do we then, but draw a-new the Modell |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.i.71 | It is more than for some, my lord, it is for all I | It is more then for some (my Lord) it is for all: all I |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.i.89 | didst swear to me then, as I was washing thy wound, | didst sweare to me then (as I was washing thy wound) |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.i.92 | wife come in then and call me gossip Quickly? – coming | wife come in then, and cal me gossip Quickly? comming |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.i.110 | throng of words that come with such more than | throng of wordes, that come with such (more then |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.ii.9 | Belike then my appetite was not princely | Belike then, my Appetite was not Princely |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.ii.18 | But that the tennis-court keeper knows better than I, | But that the Tennis-Court-keeper knowes better then I, |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.ii.34 | breeding than thine. | breeding then thine. |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.ii.55 | better than thine. Every man would think me an | better then thine: euery man would thinke me an |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iii.11 | When you were more endeared to it than now, | When you were more endeer'd to it, then now, |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iii.15 | Who then persuaded you to stay at home? | Who then perswaded you to stay at home? |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iii.41 | With others than with him! Let them alone. | With others, then with him. Let them alone: |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iii.54 | Then join you with them like a rib of steel, | Then ioyne you with them, like a Ribbe of Steele, |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.10 | Why then, cover, and set them down, and see | Why then couer, and set them downe: and see |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.19 | By the mass, here will be old utis. It will be an | Then here will be old Vtis: it will be an |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.29 | Better than I was – hem! | Better then I was: Hem. |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.84 | to me – 'twas no longer ago than Wednesday last, i'good | to me, it was no longer agoe then Wednesday last: |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.86 | our minister was by then – ‘ Neighbour Quickly,’ says | our Minister, was by then: Neighbour Quickly (sayes |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.115 | drink no more than will do me good, for no man's | drinke no more then will doe me good, for no mans |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.117 | Then to you, Mistress Dorothy! I will charge | Then to you (Mistris Dorothie) I will charge |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.174 | Then feed and be fat, my fair Calipolis! | Then feed, and be fat (my faire Calipolis.) |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.192 | Then death rock me asleep, abridge my doleful days! | then Death rocke me asleepe, abridge my dolefull dayes: |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.193 | Why then, let grievous, ghastly, gaping wounds | why then let grieuous, gastly, gaping Wounds, |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.215 | Agamemnon, and ten times better than the Nine | Agamemnon, and tenne times better then the nine |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.237 | in him than is in a mallet. | in him, then is in a Mallet. |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.238 | Why does the Prince love him so, then? | Why doth the Prince loue him so then? |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.266 | I love thee better than I love e'er a scurvy young | I loue thee better, then I loue ere a scuruie young |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.282 | A better than thou – I am a gentleman; thou | A better then thou: I am a Gentleman, thou |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.306 | I shall drive you then to confess the | I shall driue you then to confesse the |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.307 | wilful abuse, and then I know how to handle you. | wilfull abuse, and then I know how to handle you. |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.i.12 | Than in the perfumed chambers of the great, | Then in the perfum'd Chambers of the Great? |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.i.30 | Deny it to a king? Then happy low, lie down! | Deny it to a King? Then happy Lowe, lye downe, |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.i.35 | Why then, good morrow to you all, my lords. | Why then good-morrow to you all (my Lords:) |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.i.38 | Then you perceive the body of our kingdom | Then you perceiue the Body of our Kingdome, |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.i.64 | Then checked and rated by Northumberland, | (Then check'd, and rated by Northumberland) |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.i.68 | Though then, God knows, I had no such intent, | (Though then, Heauen knowes, I had no such intent, |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.i.85 | That great Northumberland, then false to him, | That great Northumberland, then false to him, |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.i.88.2 | Are these things then necessities? | Are these things then Necessities? |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.i.89 | Then let us meet them like necessities, | Then let vs meete them like Necessities; |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.ii.12 | 'A must then to the Inns o' Court shortly. I | Hee must then to the Innes of Court shortly: I |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.ii.15 | You were called ‘ lusty Shallow ’ then, cousin. | You were call'd lustie Shallow then (Cousin.) |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.ii.23 | the best of them all at commandment. Then was Jack | the best of them all at commandement. Then was Iacke |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.ii.66 | than with a wife. | then with a Wife. |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.ii.115 | go out than I. | goe out, then I. |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.ii.184 | Here is two more called than your number. | There is two more called then your number: |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.ii.200 | was then a bona-roba. Doth she hold her own well? | was then a Bona-Roba. Doth she hold her owne well. |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.ii.242 | Marry, then, Mouldy, Bullcalf, Feeble, and | Marry then, Mouldie, Bull-calfe, Feeble, and |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.ii.256 | come off and on swifter than he that gibbets on the | come off, and on, swifter then hee that gibbets on the |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.ii.271 | Clement's Inn – I was then Sir Dagonet in Arthur's | Clements Inne, I was then Sir Dagonet in Arthurs |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.ii.297 | hearer than the Turk's tribute. I do remember him at | hearer, then the Turkes Tribute. I doe remember him at |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.ii.311 | saw him but once in the tilt-yard, and then he burst his | saw him but once in the Tilt-yard, and then he burst his |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.i.30.2 | Then, my lord, | Then (my Lord) |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.i.69 | And find our griefs heavier than our offences. | And finde our Griefes heauier then our Offences. |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.i.113 | The King that loved him, as the state stood then, | The King that lou'd him, as the State stood then, |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.i.115 | And then that Henry Bolingbroke and he, | And then, that Henry Bullingbrooke and hee |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.i.121 | Then, then, when there was nothing could have stayed | Then, then, when there was nothing could haue stay'd |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.i.125 | Then threw he down himself and all their lives | Then threw hee downe himselfe, and all their Liues, |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.i.129 | The Earl of Hereford was reputed then | The Earle of Hereford was reputed then |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.i.131 | Who knows on whom fortune would then have smiled? | Who knowes, on whom Fortune would then haue smil'd? |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.i.137 | And blessed, and graced, indeed more than the King. | And bless'd, and grac'd, and did more then the King. |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.i.152 | Our battle is more full of names than yours, | Our Battaile is more full of Names then yours, |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.i.155 | Then reason will our hearts should be as good. | Then Reason will, our hearts should be as good. |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.i.156 | Say you not then our offer is compelled. | Say you not then, our Offer is compell'd. |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.i.166 | Then take, my lord of Westmorland, this schedule, | Then take (my Lord of Westmerland) this Schedule, |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.i.225 | Your grace of York, in God's name then, set forward. | Your Grace of Yorke, in heauen's name then forward. |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.ii.8 | Than now to see you here an iron man, | Then now to see you heere an Iron man |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.ii.90 | For then both parties nobly are subdued, | For then both parties nobly are subdu'd, |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.iii.5 | Well then, Colevile is your name, a knight is | Well then, Colleuile is your Name, a Knight is |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.iii.27 | When everything is ended, then you come. | When euery thing is ended, then you come. |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.iii.42 | It was more of his courtesy than your | It was more of his Courtesie, then your |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.iii.56 | Let it shine, then. | Let it shine then. |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.iii.66 | You should have won them dearer than you have. | You should haue wonne them dearer then you haue. |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.iii.84 | Shall better speak of you than you deserve. | Shall better speake of you, then you deserue. |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.iii.85 | I would you had the wit; 'twere better than | I would you had but the wit: 'twere better then |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.iii.92 | male green-sickness; and then when they marry they | Male Greene-sicknesse: and then, when they marry, they |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.iii.108 | then the vital commoners, and inland petty spirits, | then the Vitall Commoners, and in-land pettie Spirits, |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.iv.23 | Than all thy brothers; cherish it, my boy, | Then all thy Brothers: cherish it (my Boy) |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.v.111 | Then get thee gone, and dig my grave thyself, | Then get thee gone, and digge my graue thy selfe, |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.v.146 | Than as your honour and as your renown, | Then as your Honour, and as your Renowne, |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.v.202 | Yet though thou standest more sure than I could do, | Yet, though thou stand'st more sure, then I could do, |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.v.221 | Then plain and right must my possession be, | Then plaine and right must my possession be; |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.v.222 | Which I with more than with a common pain | Which I, with more, then with a Common paine, |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 V.i.27 | i'th' court is better than a penny in purse. Use his men | i'th Court, is better then a penny in purse. Vse his men |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 V.i.29 | No worse than they are backbitten, sir, for they | No worse then they are bitten, sir: For they |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 V.ii.13 | Than I have drawn it in my fantasy. | Then I haue drawne it in my fantasie. |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 V.ii.17 | How many nobles then should hold their places | How many Nobles then, should hold their places, |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 V.ii.53 | And wear it in my heart. Why then, be sad; | And weare it in my heart. Why then be sad, |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 V.ii.55 | Than a joint burden laid upon us all. | Then a ioynt burthen, laid vpon vs all. |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 V.ii.73 | I then did use the person of your father; | I then did vse the Person of your Father: |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 V.ii.74 | The image of his power lay then in me | The Image of his power, lay then in me, |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 V.ii.96 | And then imagine me taking your part, | And then imagine me, taking your part, |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 V.iii.4 | cousin Silence – and then to bed. | Cosin Silence, and then to bed. |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 V.iii.78 | Is't so? Why then, say an old man can do | Is't so? Why then say an old man can do |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 V.iii.106 | Then, Pistol, lay thy head in Furies' lap. | Then Pistoll lay thy head in Furies lappe. |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 V.iii.108 | Why then, lament therefore. | Why then Lament therefore. |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 V.v.57 | For thee thrice wider than for other men. | For thee, thrice wider then for other men. |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 V.v.66 | Till then I banish thee, on pain of death, | Till then, I banish thee, on paine of death, |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 epilogue.1 | First, my fear; then, my curtsy; last, my speech. | FIRST, my Feare: then, my Curtsie: last, my Speech. |
Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 epilogue.22 | me. If the gentlemen will not, then the gentlemen do | me, if the Gentlemen will not, then the Gentlemen do |
Henry V | H5 I.chorus.5 | Then should the warlike Harry, like himself, | Then should the Warlike Harry, like himselfe, |
Henry V | H5 I.i.74 | Than cherishing th' exhibiters against us; | Then cherishing th'exhibiters against vs: |
Henry V | H5 I.i.80 | Than ever at one time the clergy yet | Then euer at one time the Clergie yet |
Henry V | H5 I.i.95 | Then go we in to know his embassy; | Then goe we in, to know his Embassie: |
Henry V | H5 I.ii.33 | Then hear me, gracious sovereign, and you peers, | Then heare me gracious Soueraign, & you Peers, |
Henry V | H5 I.ii.50 | Established then this law: to wit, no female | Establisht then this Law; to wit, No Female |
Henry V | H5 I.ii.54 | Then doth it well appear the Salic law | Then doth it well appeare, the Salike Law |
Henry V | H5 I.ii.94 | Than amply to imbare their crooked titles | Then amply to imbarre their crooked Titles, |
Henry V | H5 I.ii.155 | She hath been then more feared than harmed, my liege; | She hath bin thẽ more fear'd thẽ harm'd, my Liege: |
Henry V | H5 I.ii.168 | Then with Scotland first begin.’ | then with Scotland first begin. |
Henry V | H5 I.ii.173 | To tame and havoc more than she can eat. | To tame and hauocke more then she can eate. |
Henry V | H5 I.ii.174 | It follows then the cat must stay at home; | It followes then, the Cat must stay at home, |
Henry V | H5 I.ii.246.2 | Thus then, in few: | Thus than in few: |
Henry V | H5 I.ii.297 | When thousands weep more than did laugh at it. | When thousands weepe more then did laugh at it. |
Henry V | H5 II.chorus.41 | But till the King come forth, and not till then, | But till the King come forth, and not till then, |
Henry V | H5 II.i.99 | friends: an thou wilt not, why then be enemies with me | frends, and thou wilt not, why then be enemies with me |
Henry V | H5 II.i.111 | Well then, that's the humour of't. | Well, then that the humor of't. |
Henry V | H5 II.ii.26 | Than is your majesty. There's not, I think, a subject | Then is your Maiesty; there's not I thinke a subiect |
Henry V | H5 II.ii.34 | Sooner than quittance of desert and merit | Sooner then quittance of desert and merit, |
Henry V | H5 II.ii.66 | Then, Richard Earl of Cambridge, there is yours; | Then Richard Earle of Cambridge, there is yours: |
Henry V | H5 II.ii.93 | Than Cambridge is, hath likewise sworn. But O, | Then Cambridge is, hath likewise sworne. But O, |
Henry V | H5 II.ii.152 | And I repent my fault more than my death, | And I repent my fault more then my death, |
Henry V | H5 II.ii.163 | Than I do at this hour joy o'er myself, | Then I do at this houre ioy ore my selfe, |
Henry V | H5 II.ii.189 | Then forth, dear countrymen! Let us deliver | Then forth, deare Countreymen: Let vs deliuer |
Henry V | H5 II.iii.24 | then I felt to his knees, and so up'ard and up'ard, and | then I felt to his knees, and so vp-peer'd, and vpward, and |
Henry V | H5 II.iii.35 | then he was rheumatic, and talked of the Whore of | then hee was rumatique, and talk'd of the Whore of |
Henry V | H5 II.iv.2 | And more than carefully it us concerns | And more then carefully it vs concernes, |
Henry V | H5 II.iv.11 | It fits us then to be as provident | It fits vs then to be as prouident, |
Henry V | H5 II.iv.24 | No, with no more than if we heard that England | No, with no more, then if we heard that England |
Henry V | H5 II.iv.44 | The enemy more mighty than he seems. | The Enemie more mightie then he seemes, |
Henry V | H5 II.iv.93 | Edward the Third, he bids you then resign | Edward the third; he bids you then resigne |
Henry V | H5 III.chorus.3 | Than that of thought. Suppose that you have seen | then that of Thought. / Suppose, that you haue seene |
Henry V | H5 III.i.6 | Then imitate the action of the tiger; | Then imitate the action of the Tyger: |
Henry V | H5 III.i.9 | Then lend the eye a terrible aspect; | Then lend the Eye a terrible aspect: |
Henry V | H5 III.ii.71 | of the Roman disciplines, than is a puppy-dog. | of the Roman disciplines, then is a Puppy-dog. |
Henry V | H5 III.ii.122 | than is meant, Captain Macmorris, peradventure I shall | then is meant, Captaine Mackmorrice, peraduenture I shall |
Henry V | H5 III.iii.15 | What is it then to me, if impious war, | What is it then to me, if impious Warre, |
Henry V | H5 III.v.39 | More sharper than your swords, hie to the field! | More sharper then your Swords, high to the field: |
Henry V | H5 III.vi.51 | Why then, rejoice therefore! | Why then reioyce therefore. |
Henry V | H5 III.vi.66 | Why, 'tis a gull, a fool, a rogue, that now and then | Why 'tis a Gull, a Foole, a Rogue, that now and then |
Henry V | H5 III.vi.112 | Well then, I know thee: what shall I know | Well then, I know thee: what shall I know |
Henry V | H5 III.vi.118 | Advantage is a better soldier than rashness. Tell him | Aduantage is a better Souldier then rashnesse. Tell him, |
Henry V | H5 III.vi.145 | Almost no better than so many French; | Almost no better then so many French; |
Henry V | H5 III.vii.17 | of his hoof is more musical than the pipe of Hermes. | of his hoofe, is more Musicall then the Pipe of Hermes |
Henry V | H5 III.vii.41 | Then did they imitate that which I composed | Then did they imitate that which I compos'd |
Henry V | H5 III.vii.50 | O, then belike she was old and gentle, and you | O then belike she was old and gentle, and you |
Henry V | H5 III.vii.54 | Be warned by me, then: they that ride so, and | Be warn'd by me then: they that ride so, and |
Henry V | H5 III.vii.102 | than you. | then you. |
Henry V | H5 III.vii.145 | leaving their wits with their wives; and then, give them | leauing their Wits with their Wiues: and then giue them |
Henry V | H5 III.vii.149 | Then shall we find tomorrow they have only | Then shall we finde to morrow, they haue only |
Henry V | H5 IV.i.15 | Were better than a churlish turf of France. | Were better then a churlish turfe of France. |
Henry V | H5 IV.i.32 | And then I would no other company. | And then I would no other company. |
Henry V | H5 IV.i.43 | Then you are a better than the King. | Then you are a better then the King. |
Henry V | H5 IV.i.60 | The figo for thee then! | The Figo for thee then. |
Henry V | H5 IV.i.104 | affections are higher mounted than ours, yet when they | affections are higher mounted then ours, yet when they |
Henry V | H5 IV.i.117 | Then I would he were here alone; so should he be | Then I would he were here alone; so should he be |
Henry V | H5 IV.i.125 | That's more than we know. | That's more then we know. |
Henry V | H5 IV.i.126 | Ay, or more than we should seek after; for we know | I, or more then wee should seeke after; for wee know |
Henry V | H5 IV.i.168 | and where they would be safe, they perish. Then if | and where they would bee safe, they perish. Then if |
Henry V | H5 IV.i.170 | damnation than he was before guilty of those impieties | damnation, then hee was before guiltie of those Impieties, |
Henry V | H5 IV.i.192 | You pay him then! That's a perilous shot out | You pay him then: that's a perillous shot out |
Henry V | H5 IV.i.204 | it in my bonnet: then, if ever thou dar'st acknowledge it, | it in my Bonnet: Then if euer thou dar'st acknowledge it, |
Henry V | H5 IV.i.235 | Of mortal griefs than do thy worshippers? | Of mortall griefes, then doe thy worshippers. |
Henry V | H5 IV.i.242 | Than they in fearing. | Then they in fearing. |
Henry V | H5 IV.i.290 | Than from it issued forced drops of blood. | Then from it issued forced drops of blood. |
Henry V | H5 IV.ii.11 | How shall we then behold their natural tears? | How shall we then behold their naturall teares? |
Henry V | H5 IV.ii.32 | And all is done. Then let the trumpets sound | And all is done: then let the Trumpets sound |
Henry V | H5 IV.iii.8 | Then joyfully, my noble Lord of Bedford, | Then ioyfully, my Noble Lord of Bedford, |
Henry V | H5 IV.iii.47 | Then will he strip his sleeve, and show his scars, | Then will he strip his sleeue, and shew his skarres: |
Henry V | H5 IV.iii.51 | What feats he did that day. Then shall our names, | What feats he did that day. Then shall our Names, |
Henry V | H5 IV.iii.77 | Which likes me better than to wish us one. | Which likes me better, then to wish vs one. |
Henry V | H5 IV.iii.91 | Bid them achieve me, and then sell my bones. | Bid them atchieue me, and then sell my bones. |
Henry V | H5 IV.iii.104 | Mark then abounding valour in our English, | Marke then abounding valour in our English: |
Henry V | H5 IV.iii.120 | As, if God please, they shall – my ransom then | As if God please, they shall; my Ransome then |
Henry V | H5 IV.iv.69 | more valour than this roaring devil i'th' old play, that | more valour, then this roaring diuell i'th olde play, that |
Henry V | H5 IV.v.15 | Whilst by a slave, no gentler than my dog, | Whilst a base slaue, no gentler then my dogge, |
Henry V | H5 IV.vi.17 | Tarry, sweet soul, for mine, then fly abreast, | Tarry (sweet soule) for mine, then flye a-brest: |
Henry V | H5 IV.vi.37 | Then every soldier kill his prisoners! | Then euery souldiour kill his Prisoners, |
Henry V | H5 IV.vii.65 | His eyes are humbler than they used to be. | His eyes are humbler then they vs'd to be. |
Henry V | H5 IV.vii.71 | To book our dead, and then to bury them, | To booke our dead, and then to bury them, |
Henry V | H5 IV.vii.88 | Then call we this the field of Agincourt, | Then call we this the field of Agincourt, |
Henry V | H5 IV.vii.140 | Then keep thy vow, sirrah, when thou | Then keepe thy vow sirrah, when thou |
Henry V | H5 IV.viii.4 | more good toward you, peradventure, than is in your | more good toward you peraduenture, then is in your |
Henry V | H5 IV.viii.124 | And then to Calais, and to England then, | And then to Callice, and to England then, |
Henry V | H5 V.chorus.44 | Then brook abridgement, and your eyes advance, | Then brooke abridgement, and your eyes aduance, |
Henry V | H5 V.i.7 | know to be no petter than a fellow, look you now, of no | know to be no petter then a fellow, looke you now, of no |
Henry V | H5 V.i.12 | him once again, and then I will tell him a little piece of | him once againe, and then I will tell him a little piece of |
Henry V | H5 V.ii.29 | Since, then, my office hath so far prevailed | Since then my Office hath so farre preuayl'd, |
Henry V | H5 V.ii.75.2 | Well then, the peace | Well then: the Peace |
Henry V | H5 V.ii.127 | ‘ I love you:’ then if you urge me farther than to say, | I loue you; then if you vrge me farther, then to say, |
Henry V | H5 V.ii.166 | say'st thou then to my love? Speak, my fair, and fairly, | say'st thou then to my Loue? speake my faire, and fairely, |
Henry V | H5 V.ii.174 | and, Kate, when France is mine, and I am yours, then | and Kate, when France is mine, and I am yours; then |
Henry V | H5 V.ii.181 | le possession de moi, – let me see, what then? Saint Denis | le possession de moy. (Let mee see, what then? Saint Dennis |
Henry V | H5 V.ii.254 | Then I will kiss your lips, Kate. | Then I will kisse your Lippes, Kate. |
Henry V | H5 V.ii.273 | more eloquence in a sugar touch of them than in the | more eloquence in a Sugar touch of them, then in the |
Henry V | H5 V.ii.275 | persuade Harry of England than a general petition of | perswade Harry of England, then a generall Petition of |
Henry V | H5 V.ii.291 | her, then, being a maid yet rosed over with the virgin | her then, being a Maid, yet ros'd ouer with the Virgin |
Henry V | H5 V.ii.297 | They are then excused, my lord, when they | They are then excus'd, my Lord, when they |
Henry V | H5 V.ii.299 | Then, good my lord, teach your cousin to | Then good my Lord, teach your Cousin to |
Henry V | H5 V.ii.304 | blind, though they have their eyes, and then they | blinde, though they haue their eyes, and then they |
Henry V | H5 V.ii.326 | His daughter first, and then, in sequel, all, | His Daughter first; and in sequele, all, |
Henry V | H5 V.ii.337 | I pray you then, in love and dear alliance, | I pray you then, in loue and deare allyance, |
Henry V | H5 V.ii.365 | Then shall I swear to Kate, and you to me, | Then shall I sweare to Kate, and you to me, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.i.11 | His arms spread wider than a dragon's wings; | His Armes spred wider then a Dragons Wings: |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.i.14 | Than midday sun fierce bent against their faces. | Then mid-day Sunne, fierce bent against their faces. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.i.40 | More than God or religious churchmen may. | More then God or Religious Church-men may. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.i.56 | Than Julius Caesar or bright – | Then Iulius Casar, or bright---- |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.i.120 | More than three hours the fight continued, | More then three houres the fight continued: |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.i.141 | Is Talbot slain? Then I will slay myself, | Is Talbot slaine then? I will slay my selfe, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.i.169 | And then I will proclaim young Henry king. | And then I will proclayme young Henry King. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.ii.40 | The walls they'll tear down than forsake the siege. | The Walls they'le teare downe, then forsake the Siege. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.ii.102 | Then come, a God's name; I fear no woman. | Then come a Gods name, I feare no woman. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.ii.116 | Then will I think upon a recompense. | Then will I thinke vpon a recompence. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.ii.122 | He may mean more than we poor men do know; | He may meane more then we poor men do know, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.ii.141 | Thou with an eagle art inspired then. | Thou with an Eagle art inspired then. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.iii.10 | We do no otherwise than we are willed. | We doe no otherwise then wee are will'd. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.iii.85 | This cardinal's more haughty than the devil. | This Cardinall's more haughtie then the Deuill. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.iii.89 | See the coast cleared, and then we will depart. | See the Coast clear'd, and then we will depart. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.iv.33 | Rather than I would be so pilled esteemed. | Rather then I would be so pil'd esteem'd: |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.iv.44 | Then broke I from the officers that led me, | Then broke I from the Officers that led me, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.iv.111 | And then we'll try what these dastard Frenchmen dare. | And then wee'le try what these dastard Frenchmen dare. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.v.1.2 | the Dauphin and driveth him. Then enter Joan la | the Dolphin, and driueth him: Then enter Ioane de |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.v.1.4 | Then enter Talbot | Then enter Talbot. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.v.15.1 | A short alarum. Then she enters the town with | A short Alarum: then enter the Towne with |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.vi.22 | Than Rhodope's of Memphis ever was. | Then Rhodophe's or Memphis euer was. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.vi.25 | Than the rich-jewelled coffer of Darius, | Then the rich-iewel'd Coffer of Darius, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.i.13 | Embrace we then this opportunity, | Embrace we then this opportunitie, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.i.45 | More venturous or desperate than this. | More venturous, or desperate then this. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.i.71 | Then how or which way should they first break in? | Then how, or which way, should they first breake in? |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.ii.44 | Is it even so? Nay, then I see our wars | Is it euen so? Nay, then I see our Warres |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.ii.48 | Ne'er trust me then; for when a world of men | Ne're trust me then: for when a World of men |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.ii.54 | No, truly, 'tis more than manners will; | No,truly, 'tis more then manners will: |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.ii.57 | Well, then, alone, since there's no remedy, | Well then, alone (since there's no remedie) |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.iii.32 | If thou be he, then art thou prisoner. | If thou be he, then art thou Prisoner. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.iii.48 | Then have I substance too. | Then haue I substance too. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.iii.67 | I find thou art no less than fame hath bruited, | I finde thou art no lesse then Fame hath bruited, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.iii.68 | And more than may be gathered by thy shape. | And more then may be gathered by thy shape. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.iv.5 | Then say at once if I maintained the truth; | Then say at once, if I maintain'd the Truth: |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.iv.10 | Judge you, my Lord of Warwick, then between us. | Iudge you, my Lord of Warwicke, then betweene vs. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.iv.18 | Good faith, I am no wiser than a daw. | Good faith I am no wiser then a Daw. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.iv.46 | Then, for the truth and plainness of the case, | Then for the truth, and plainnesse of the Case, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.iv.98 | And that I'll prove on better men than Somerset, | And that Ile proue on better men then Somerset, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.iv.119 | And if thou be not then created York, | And if thou be not then created Yorke, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.v.21 | Enough; my soul shall then be satisfied. | Enough: my Soule shall then be satisfied. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.v.26 | And even since then hath Richard been obscured, | And euen since then, hath Richard beene obscur'd, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.v.84 | Thy father, Earl of Cambridge then, derived | Thy Father, Earle of Cambridge, then deriu'd |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.v.100 | Was nothing less than bloody tyranny. | Was nothing lesse then bloody Tyranny. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.v.109 | Thou dost then wrong me, as that slaughterer doth | Thou do'st then wrong me, as yt slaughterer doth, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.v.121 | Will see his burial better than his life. | Will see his Buryall better then his Life. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 III.i.19 | Lascivious, wanton, more than well beseems | Lasciuious, wanton, more then well beseemes |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 III.i.34 | More than I do, except I be provoked? | More then I doe? except I be prouok'd. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 III.i.1.52 | Roam thither then. | Roame thither then. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 III.i.118 | Then be at peace, except ye thirst for blood. | Then be at peace, except ye thirst for blood. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 III.i.171 | Stoop then and set your knee against my foot; | Stoope then, and set your Knee against my Foot, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 III.ii.35 | And then do execution on the watch. | And then doe execution on the Watch. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 III.ii.62 | Belike your lordship takes us then for fools, | Belike your Lordship takes vs then for fooles, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 III.ii.100 | Then be it so. Heavens keep old Bedford safe! | Then be it so: Heauens keepe old Bedford safe. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 III.ii.128 | And then depart to Paris to the King, | And then depart to Paris, to the King, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 III.iii.16 | Employ thee then, sweet virgin, for our good. | Employ thee then, sweet Virgin, for our good. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 III.iii.17 | Then thus it must be; this doth Joan devise: | Then thus it must be, this doth Ioane deuise: |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 III.iii.55 | Should grieve thee more than streams of foreign gore. | Should grieue thee more then streames of forraine gore. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 III.iii.66 | Who then but English Henry will be lord, | Who then, but English Henry, will be Lord, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 III.iii.74 | See then, thou fightest against thy countrymen, | See then, thou fight'st against thy Countreymen, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 III.iv.45 | And after meet you sooner than you would. | And after meete you, sooner then you would. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.i.27 | Then judge, great lords, if I have done amiss, | Then iudge (great Lords) if I haue done amisse: |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.i.39 | He then that is not furnished in this sort | He then, that is not furnish'd in this sort, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.i.68 | Why then, Lord Talbot there shall talk with him | Why then Lord Talbot there shal talk with him, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.i.73 | Then gather strength and march unto him straight; | Then gather strength, and march vnto him straight: |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.i.88 | First let me know, and then I'll answer you. | First let me know, and then Ile answer you. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.i.117 | And then your highness shall command a peace. | And then your Highnesse shall command a Peace. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.i.119 | Betwixt ourselves let us decide it then. | Betwixt our selues let vs decide it then. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.i.159 | Than I am able to instruct or teach; | Then I am able to instruct or teach: |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.i.186 | Than yet can be imagined or supposed. | Then yet can be imagin'd or suppos'd: |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.ii.48 | If we be English deer, be then in blood; | If we be English Deere, be then in blood, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.iii.7 | Two mightier troops than that the Dauphin led, | Two mightier Troopes then that the Dolphin led, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.iii.34 | Then God take mercy on brave Talbot's soul | Then God take mercy on braue Talbots soule, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.iv.45 | If he be dead, brave Talbot, then adieu! | If he be dead, braue Talbot then adieu. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.v.21 | Then let me stay, and, father, do you fly. | Then let me stay, and Father doe you flye: |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.v.33 | Rather than life preserved with infamy. | Rather then Life, preseru'd with Infamie. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.v.35 | Ay, rather than I'll shame my mother's womb. | I, rather then Ile shame my Mothers Wombe. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.v.44 | If death be so apparent, then both fly. | If Death be so apparant, then both flye. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.v.49 | Than can yourself yourself in twain divide. | Then can your selfe, your selfe in twaine diuide: |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.v.52 | Then here I take my leave of thee, fair son, | Then here I take my leaue of thee, faire Sonne, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.vi.12 | Of bold-faced victory. Then leaden age, | Of bold-fac't Victorie. Then Leaden Age, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.vi.52 | Then talk no more of flight; it is no boot; | Then talke no more of flight, it is no boot, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.vi.54 | Then follow thou thy desperate sire of Crete, | Then follow thou thy desp'rate Syre of Creet, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.vii.28 | ‘ Had Death been French, then Death had died today.’ | Had Death bene French, then Death had dyed to day. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.i.30 | Then I perceive that will be verified | Then I perceiue, that will be verified |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.ii.4 | Then march to Paris, royal Charles of France, | Then march to Paris Royall Charles of France, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.ii.21 | Then on, my lords; and France be fortunate! | Then on my Lords, and France be fortunate. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.iii.22 | Then take my soul – my body, soul, and all, | Then take my soule; my body, soule, and all, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.ii.30.2 | fight hand to hand. York then fights with Joan la | fight hand to hand. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.iii.82 | Then how can Margaret be thy paramour? | Then how can Margaret be thy Paramour? |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.iii.105 | And then I need not crave his courtesy. | And then I need not craue his curtesie. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.iii.128 | Then call our captains and our colours forth! | Then call our Captaines and our Colours forth, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.iii.167 | (To them) I'll over then to England with this news | Ile ouer then to England with this newes. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.iv.60 | Then, Joan, discover thine infirmity, | Then Ione discouer thine infirmity, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.iv.63 | Murder not then the fruit within my womb, | Murther not then the Fruite within my Wombe, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.iv.86 | Then lead me hence; with whom I leave my curse: | Then lead me hence: with whom I leaue my curse. |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.iv.133 | Must he be then as shadow of himself? | Must he be then as shadow of himselfe? |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.iv.139 | With more than half the Gallian territories, | With more then halfe the Gallian Territories, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.iv.169 | Then swear allegiance to his majesty: | Then sweare Allegeance to his Maiesty, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.v.28 | How shall we then dispense with that contract | How shall we then dispense with that contract, |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.v.36 | Why, what, I pray, is Margaret more than that? | Why what (I pray) is Margaret more then that? |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.v.56 | Than to be dealt in by attorneyship; | Then to be dealt in by Atturney-ship: |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.v.71 | More than in women commonly is seen, | (More then in women commonly is seene) |
Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.v.77 | Then yield, my lords, and here conclude with me | Then yeeld my Lords,and heere conclude with mee, |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.i.1.1 | Flourish of trumpets, then hautboys. Enter the King, | Flourish of Trumpets: Then Hoboyes. Enter King, |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.i.19 | Than this kind kiss. O Lord that lends me life, | Then this kinde kisse: O Lord, that lends me life, |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.i.163 | Why should he then protect our sovereign, | Why should he then protect our Soueraigne? |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.i.174 | Than all the princes' in the land beside. | Then all the Princes in the Land beside, |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.i.184 | More like a soldier than a man o'th' church, | More like a Souldier then a man o'th' Church, |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.i.206 | Then let's make haste away, and look unto the main. | Then lets make hast away, / And looke vnto the maine. |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.i.246 | Then, York, be still awhile till time do serve; | Then Yorke be still a-while, till time do serue: |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.i.252 | Then will I raise aloft the milk-white rose, | Then will I raise aloft the Milke-white-Rose, |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.ii.41 | Nay, Eleanor, then must I chide outright: | Nay Elinor, then must I chide outright: |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.iii.2 | Lord Protector will come this way by and by, and then | Lord Protector will come this way by and by, and then |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.iii.69 | But can do more in England than the King. | But can doe more in England then the King. |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.iii.71 | Cannot do more in England than the Nevils; | Cannot doe more in England then the Neuils: |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.iii.76 | More like an empress than Duke Humphrey's wife. | More like an Empresse, then Duke Humphreyes Wife: |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.iii.84 | Was better worth than all my father's lands, | Was better worth then all my Fathers Lands, |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.iii.102 | Then let him be denayed the Regentship. | Then let him be denay'd the Regent-ship. |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.iii.120 | Resign it then, and leave thine insolence. | Resigne it then, and leaue thine insolence. |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.iv.22.3 | te' etc. It thunders and lightens terribly; then the | te, &c. It Thunders and Lightens terribly: then the |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.iv.36 | Than where castles mounted stand. | Then where Castles mounted stand. |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.iv.68 | Than where castles mounted stand. | Then where Castles mounted stand. |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 II.i.14 | That mounts no higher than a bird can soar. | That mounts no higher then a Bird can sore: |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 II.i.27 | No malice, sir; no more than well becomes | No mallice Sir, no more then well becomes |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 II.i.112 | Why then, thou knowest what colour jet is of? | Why then, thou know'st what Colour Iet is of? |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 II.i.124 | Then, Saunder, sit there, the lyingest knave | Then Saunder, sit there, / The lying'st Knaue |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 II.i.136 | Then send for one presently. | Then send for one presently. |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 II.i.158 | But you have done more miracles than I; | But you haue done more Miracles then I: |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 II.ii.9 | Then thus: | Then thus: |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 II.ii.53 | What plain proceedings is more plain than this? | What plaine proceedings is more plain then this? |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 II.ii.59 | Then, father Salisbury, kneel we together, | Then Father Salisbury, kneele we together, |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 II.iii.27 | Than when thou wert Protector to thy King. | Then when thou wert Protector to thy King. |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 II.iii.57 | Or more afraid to fight, than is the appellant, | Or more afraid to fight, then is the Appellant, |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 II.iii.84 | Thump? Then see thou thump thy master well. | Thumpe? Then see thou thumpe thy Master well. |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 II.iv.97 | And shall I then be used reproachfully? | And shall I then be vs'd reproachfully? |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 II.iv.100 | Sheriff, farewell, and better than I fare, | Sherife farewell, and better then I fare, |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.i.23 | Me seemeth then it is no policy, | Me seemeth then, it is no Pollicie, |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.i.74 | Ah, what's more dangerous than this fond affiance? | Ah what's more dangerous, then this fond affiance? |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.i.96 | Unless thou wert more loyal than thou art. | Vnlesse thou wert more loyall then thou art: |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.i.120 | I say no more than truth, so help me God! | I say no more then truth, so helpe me God. |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.i.183 | Far truer spoke than meant. I lose indeed; | Farre truer spoke then meant: I lose indeede, |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.i.201 | For what's more miserable than discontent? | For what's more miserable then Discontent? |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.i.231 | Believe me, lords, were none more wise than I – | Beleeue me Lords, were none more wise then I, |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.i.242 | More than mistrust, that shows him worthy death. | More then mistrust, that shewes him worthy death. |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.i.252 | Madam, 'tis true; and were't not madness then | Madame 'tis true: and wer't not madnesse then, |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.i.298 | Than bring a burden of dishonour home, | Then bring a burthen of dis-honour home, |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.i.302 | Nay then, this spark will prove a raging fire | Nay then, this sparke will proue a raging fire, |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.i.306 | Might happily have proved far worse than his. | Might happily haue prou'd farre worse then his. |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.i.307 | What, worse than naught? Nay, then a shame take all! | What, worse then naught? nay, then a shame take all. |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.i.318 | Then, noble York, take thou this task in hand. | Then, Noble Yorke, take thou this Taske in hand. |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.i.339 | My brain, more busy than the labouring spider, | My Brayne, more busie then the laboring Spider, |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.i.380 | Why, then from Ireland come I with my strength, | Why then from Ireland come I with my strength, |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.ii.21 | Than from true evidence of good esteem, | Then from true euidence, of good esteeme, |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.ii.73 | Be woe for me, more wretched than he is. | Be woe for me, more wretched then he is. |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.ii.79 | Why, then, Dame Margaret was ne'er thy joy. | Why then Dame Elianor was neere thy ioy. |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.ii.88 | What did I then, but cursed the gentle gusts | What did I then? But curst the gentle gusts, |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.ii.99 | Because thy flinty heart, more hard than they, | Because thy flinty heart more hard then they, |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.ii.133 | And comment then upon his sudden death. | And comment then vpon his sodaine death. |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.ii.135.1 | Exeunt Warwick, then Salisbury | |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.ii.186 | Then you belike suspect these noblemen | Than you belike suspect these Noblemen, |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.ii.232 | What stronger breastplate than a heart untainted! | What stronger Brest-plate then a heart vntainted? |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.ii.322 | Gall, worse than gall, the daintiest that they taste! | Gall, worse then Gall, the daintiest that they taste: |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.ii.355 | Loather a hundred times to part than die. | Loather a hundred times to part then dye; |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.ii.399 | And then it lived in sweet Elysium. | And then it liu'd in sweete Elizium. |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.ii.401 | From thee to die were torture more than death. | From thee to dye, were torture more then death: |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.iii.12 | Alive again? Then show me where he is; | Aliue againe? Then shew me where he is, |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.i.108 | Than Bargulus, the strong Illyrian pirate. | Then Bargulus the strong Illyrian Pyrate. |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.i.127 | Stoop to the block than these knees bow to any | Stoope to the blocke, then these knees bow to any, |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.i.130 | Than stand uncovered to the vulgar groom. | Then stand vncouer'd to the Vulgar Groome. |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.i.132 | More can I bear than you dare execute. | More can I beare, then you dare execute. |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.ii.3 | They have the more need to sleep now then. | They haue the more neede to sleepe now then. |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.ii.20 | brave mind than a hard hand. | braue minde, then a hard hand. |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.ii.26 | Then is sin struck down like an ox, and iniquity's | Then is sin strucke downe like an Oxe, and iniquities |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.ii.60 | Be brave then; for your captain is brave, and vows | Be braue then, for your Captaine is Braue, and Vowes |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.ii.86 | Nay, then he is a conjurer. | Nay then he is a Coniurer. |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.ii.157 | than that, he can speak French; and therefore he is a | then that, he can speake French, and therefore hee is a |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.ii.161 | enemies; go to, then, I ask but this: can he that speaks | enemies: go too then, I ask but this: Can he that speaks |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.ii.179 | But then are we in order when we are most out | But then are we in order, when we are most out |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.iv.12 | Rather than bloody war shall cut them short, | Rather then bloody Warre shall cut them short, |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.iv.54 | Then linger not, my lord. Away! Take horse! | Then linger not my Lord, away, take horse. |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.v.1.1 | Enter Lord Scales upon the Tower, walking. Then | Enter Lord Scales vpon the Tower walking. Then |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.vi.6 | other than Lord Mortimer. | other then Lord Mortimer. |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.vi.13 | Come then, let's go fight with them. But first, | Come, then let's go fight with them: / But first, |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.vii.1.2 | Then enter Jack Cade with his company | Then enter Iacke Cade, with his Company. |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.vii.7 | Mass, 'twill be sore law then, for he was | Masse 'twill be sore Law then, for he was |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.vii.14 | Then we are like to have biting statutes, | Then we are like to haue biting Statutes |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.vii.46 | cloak, when honester men than thou go in their hose and | Cloake, when honester men then thou go in their Hose and |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.vii.83 | Ye shall have a hempen caudle then, and the help of | Ye shall haue a hempen Candle then, & the help of |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.vii.103 | and then break into his son-in-law's house, Sir James | and then breake into his Sonne in Lawes house, Sir Iames |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.viii.47 | Than you should stoop unto a Frenchman's mercy. | Then you should stoope vnto a Frenchmans mercy. |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.ix.2 | And could command no more content than I? | And could command no more content then I? |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.ix.13 | Then, heaven, set ope thy everlasting gates | Then heauen set ope thy euerlasting gates, |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.x.30 | I know thee not; why then should I betray thee? | I know thee not, why then should I betray thee? |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 V.i.28 | I am far better born than is the King, | I am farre better borne then is the king: |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 V.i.44 | Then, Buckingham, I do dismiss my powers. | Then Buckingham I do dismisse my Powres. |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 V.i.60 | Then what intends these forces thou dost bring? | Then what intends these Forces thou dost bring? |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 V.i.88 | Then, York, unloose thy long-imprisoned thoughts | Then Yorke vnloose thy long imprisoned thoughts, |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 V.i.140 | And if words will not, then our weapons shall. | And if words will not, then our Weapons shal. |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 V.i.199 | Than any thou canst conjure up today; | Then any thou canst coniure vp to day: |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 V.i.215 | Foul stigmatic, that's more than thou canst tell. | Foule stygmaticke that's more then thou canst tell. |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 V.ii.16 | Then nobly, York; 'tis for a crown thou fightest. | Then nobly Yorke, 'tis for a Crown thou fightst: |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 V.ii.64 | But then Aeneas bare a living load, | But then, Aeneas bare a liuing loade; |
Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 V.ii.78 | If you be ta'en, we then should see the bottom | If you be tane, we then should see the bottome |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 I.i.28 | Assist me then, sweet Warwick, and I will; | Assist me then, sweet Warwick, and I will, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 I.i.43 | Then leave me not; my lords, be resolute; | Then leaue me not, my Lords be resolute, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 I.i.97 | Than drops of blood were in my father's veins. | Then drops of bloud were in my Fathers Veines. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 I.i.130 | My title's good, and better far than his. | My Title's good, and better farre then his. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 I.i.136 | What then? | What then? |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 I.i.137 | An if he may, then am I lawful king; | And if he may, then am I lawfull King: |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 I.i.224 | Rather than have made that savage Duke thine heir | Rather then haue made that sauage Duke thine Heire, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 I.i.262 | I'll see your grace; till then I'll follow her. | Ile see your Grace: till then, Ile follow her. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 I.ii.26 | Then, seeing 'twas he that made you to depose, | Then seeing 'twas he that made you to depose, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 I.iii.23 | Then let my father's blood open it again; | Then let my Fathers blood open it againe, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 I.iii.45 | Then let me die, for now thou hast no cause. | Then let me dye, for now thou hast no cause. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 I.iv.111 | She-wolf of France, but worse than wolves of France, | Shee-Wolfe of France, / But worse then Wolues of France, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 I.iv.112 | Whose tongue more poisons than the adder's tooth! | Whose Tongue more poysons then the Adders Tooth: |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 I.iv.155 | O, ten times more, than tigers of Hyrcania. | Oh, tenne times more then Tygers of Hyrcania. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.i.42 | You love the breeder better than the male. | You loue the Breeder better then the Male. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.i.86 | Tears then for babes, blows and revenge for me! | Teares then for Babes; Blowes, and Reuenge for mee. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.i.99 | The words would add more anguish than the wounds. | The words would adde more anguish then the wounds. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.i.106 | I come to tell you things sith then befallen. | I come to tell you things sith then befalne. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.i.111 | I, then in London, keeper of the King, | I then in London, keeper of the King, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.i.125 | Or more than common fear of Clifford's rigour, | Or more then common feare of Cliffords Rigour, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.i.200 | Then Clifford, were thy heart as hard as steel, | Then Clifford, were thy heart as hard as Steele, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.i.203 | Then strike up drums; God and Saint George for us! | Then strike vp Drums, God and S. George for vs. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.i.208 | Why then it sorts, brave warriors; let's away. | Why then it sorts, braue Warriors, let's away. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.ii.53 | Than in possession any jot of pleasure. | Then in possession any iot of pleasure. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.ii.77 | Be it with resolution then to fight. | Be it with resolution then to fight. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.ii.104 | Your legs did better service than your hands. | Your legges did better seruice then your hands. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.ii.105 | Then 'twas my turn to fly, and now 'tis thine. | Then 'twas my turne to fly, and now 'tis thine: |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.ii.118 | Defy them then, or else hold close thy lips. | Defie them then, or els hold close thy lips. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.ii.123 | Then, executioner, unsheathe thy sword. | Then Executioner vnsheath thy sword: |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.ii.146 | Helen of Greece was fairer far than thou, | Helen of Greece was fayrer farre then thou, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.ii.156 | Even then that sunshine brewed a shower for him | Euen then that Sun-shine brew'd a showre for him, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.iii.23 | Then let the earth be drunken with our blood; | Then let the earth be drunken with our blood: |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.v.9 | Sometime the flood prevails, and then the wind; | Sometime, the Flood preuailes; and than the Winde: |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.v.10 | Now one the better, then another best; | Now, one the better: then, another best; |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.v.22 | To be no better than a homely swain; | To be no better then a homely Swaine, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.v.30 | When this is known, then to divide the times: | When this is knowne, then to diuide the Times: |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.v.44 | Than doth a rich embroidered canopy | Then doth a rich Imbroider'd Canopie |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.v.124 | Here sits a king more woeful than you are. | Heere sits a King, more wofull then you are. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.vi.4 | More than my body's parting with my soul! | More then my Bodies parting with my Soule: |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.vi.17 | They never then had sprung like summer flies; | They neuer then had sprung like Sommer Flyes: |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.vi.41 | Clifford groans and then dies | Clifford grones |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.vi.77 | What! Not an oath? Nay, then the world goes hard | What, not an Oath? Nay then the world go's hard |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.vi.97 | And then to Brittany I'll cross the sea | And then to Britanny Ile crosse the Sea, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.i.35 | By this account then Margaret may win him; | By this account then, Margaret may winne him, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.i.54 | Art then forsaken, as thou wentest forlorn! | Art then forsaken, as thou went'st forlorne. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.i.56 | More than I seem, and less than I was born to: | More then I seeme, and lesse then I was born to: |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.i.79 | And tell me, then, have you not broke your oaths? | And tell me then, haue you not broke your Oathes? |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.3 | His lands then seized on by the conqueror. | His Land then seiz'd on by the Conqueror, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.21 | Ay, widow? Then I'll warrant you all your lands, | I Widow? then Ile warrant you all your Lands, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.28 | Nay then, whip me; he'll rather give her two. | Nay then whip me: hee'le rather giue her two. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.32 | Be pitiful, dread lord, and grant it then. | Be pittifull, dread Lord, and graunt it then. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.40 | Then get your husband's lands, to do them good. | Then get your Husbands Lands, to doe them good. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.49 | Why, then I will do what your grace commands. | Why then I will doe what your Grace commands. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.51 | As red as fire! Nay, then her wax must melt. | As red as fire? nay then, her Wax must melt. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.55 | Why, then, thy husband's lands I freely give thee. | Why then, thy Husbands Lands I freely giue thee. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.65 | Why, then you mean not as I thought you did. | Why then you meane not, as I thought you did. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.71 | Why, then thou shalt not have thy husband's lands. | Why then thou shalt not haue thy Husbands Lands. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.72 | Why, then mine honesty shall be my dower; | Why then mine Honestie shall be my Dower, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.81 | Then, no, my lord. My suit is at an end. | Then No, my Lord: my suit is at an end. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.90 | 'Tis better said than done, my gracious lord. | 'Tis better said then done, my gracious Lord: |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.94 | I speak no more than what my soul intends; | I speake no more then what my Soule intends, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.96 | And that is more than I will yield unto. | And that is more then I will yeeld vnto: |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.101 | No more than when my daughters call thee mother. | No more, then when my Daughters / Call thee Mother. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.114 | That's a day longer than a wonder lasts. | That's a day longer then a Wonder lasts. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.134 | Why then, I do but dream on sovereignty; | Why then I doe but dreame on Soueraigntie, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.146 | Well, say there is no kingdom then for Richard, | Well, say there is no Kingdome then for Richard: |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.152 | Than to accomplish twenty golden crowns! | Then to accomplish twentie Golden Crownes. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.163 | And am I then a man to be beloved? | And am I then a man to be belou'd? |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.165 | Then, since this earth affords no joy to me | Then since this Earth affoords no Ioy to me, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.167 | As are of better person than myself, | As are of better Person then my selfe: |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.186 | I'll drown more sailors than the mermaid shall; | Ile drowne more Saylers then the Mermaid shall, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.187 | I'll slay more gazers than the basilisk; | Ile slay more gazers then the Basiliske, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.189 | Deceive more slily than Ulysses could, | Deceiue more slyly then Vlisses could, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.iii.53 | And then to crave a league of amity; | And then to craue a League of Amitie: |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.iii.80 | And thou no more art prince than she is queen. | And thou no more art Prince, then shee is Queene. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.iii.81 | Then Warwick disannuls great John of Gaunt, | Then Warwicke disanulls great Iohn of Gaunt, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.iii.103 | Was done to death? And more than so, my father, | Was done to death? and more then so, my Father, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.iii.119 | Then further, all dissembling set aside, | Then further: all dissembling set aside, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.iii.134 | Then, Warwick, thus: our sister shall be Edward's; | Then Warwicke, thus: / Our Sister shall be Edwards. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.iii.147 | Then 'tis but reason that I be released | Then 'tis but reason, that I be releas'd |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.iii.155 | And better 'twere you troubled him than France. | And better 'twere, you troubled him, then France. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.iii.210 | For matching more for wanton lust than honour, | For matching more for wanton Lust, then Honor, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.iii.211 | Or than for strength and safety of our country. | Or then for strength and safety of our Country. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.iii.222 | Then, England's messenger, return in post | Then Englands Messenger, returne in Poste, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.iii.261 | Then none but I shall turn his jest to sorrow. | Then none but I, shall turne his Iest to Sorrow. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.i.29 | Then this is mine opinion: that King Lewis | Then this is mine opinion: / That King Lewis |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.i.38 | 'Gainst foreign storms than any home-bred marriage. | 'Gainst forraine stormes, then any home-bred Marriage. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.i.42 | 'Tis better using France than trusting France; | 'Tis better vsing France, then trusting France: |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.i.71 | And meaner than myself have had like fortune. | And meaner then my selfe haue had like fortune. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.i.109 | Than all the rest, discharged me with these words: | Then all the rest, discharg'd me with these words: |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.i.136 | Tell me if you love Warwick more than me. | Tell me, if you loue Warwicke more then me; |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.i.137 | If it be so, then both depart to him; | If it be so, then both depart to him: |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.i.138 | I rather wish you foes than hollow friends. | I rather wish you foes, then hollow friends. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.i.146 | Why, so. Then am I sure of victory. | Why so: then am I sure of Victorie. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.ii.6 | Then, gentle Clarence, welcome unto Warwick; | Then gentle Clarence, welcome vnto Warwicke, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.ii.28 | Why, then, let's on our way in silent sort; | Why then, let's on our way in silent sort, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.iii.7 | Tomorrow then belike shall be the day, | To morrow then belike shall be the day, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.iii.17 | I like it better than a dangerous honour. | I like it better then a dangerous honor. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.iii.34 | Then I degraded you from being king, | Then I degraded you from being King, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.iii.43 | Nay, then I see that Edward needs must down. | Nay then I see, that Edward needs must downe. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.iii.49 | Then, for his mind, be Edward England's king. | Then for his minde, be Edward Englands King, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.iv.6 | Then is my sovereign slain? | Then is my Soueraigne slaine? |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.iv.16 | Till then fair hope must hinder life's decay; | Till then, faire hope must hinder liues decay: |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.iv.25 | But, madam, where is Warwick then become? | But Madam, / Where is Warwicke then become? |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.v.20.1 | But whither shall we then? | But whether shall we then? |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.v.26 | Better do so than tarry and be hanged. | Better do so, then tarry and be hang'd. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.v.27 | Come then, away; let's ha' no more ado. | Come then away, lets ha no more adoo. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.vi.8 | I then crave pardon of your majesty. | I then craue pardon of your Maiestie. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.vi.48 | Why then, though loath, yet must I be content; | Why then, though loth, yet must I be content: |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.vi.53 | And, Clarence, now then it is more than needful | And Clarence, now then it is more then needfull, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.vi.76 | Must help you more than you are hurt by me. | Must helpe you more, then you are hurt by mee. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.vii.7 | What then remains, we being thus arrived | What then remaines, we being thus arriu'd |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.vii.29 | Ay, say you so? The gates shall then be opened. | I, say you so? the Gates shall then be opened. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.vii.48 | Then fare you well, for I will hence again; | Then fare you well, for I will hence againe, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.vii.59 | When we grow stronger, then we'll make our claim; | When wee grow stronger, / Then wee'le make our Clayme: |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.vii.60 | Till then, 'tis wisdom to conceal our meaning. | Till then, 'tis wisdome to conceale our meaning. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.vii.65 | Then be it as you will; for 'tis my right, | Then be it as you will: for 'tis my right, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.viii.47 | Then why should they love Edward more than me? | Then why should they loue Edward more then me? |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.i.11 | Then Clarence is at hand; I hear his drum. | Then Clarence is at hand, I heare his Drumme. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.i.35 | Why then, 'tis mine, if but by Warwick's gift. | Why then 'tis mine, if but by Warwickes gift. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.i.52 | Than bear so low a sail to strike to thee. | Then beare so low a sayle, to strike to thee. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.i.79 | More than the nature of a brother's love! | More then the nature of a Brothers Loue. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.i.91 | Than Jephthah, when he sacrificed his daughter. | Then Iephah, when he sacrific'd his Daughter. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.i.104 | Than if thou never hadst deserved our hate. | Then if thou neuer hadst deseru'd our hate. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.ii.33 | Why, then I would not fly. Ah, Montague, | Why then I would not flye. Ah Mountague, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.iv.36 | More than with ruthless waves, with sands and rocks. | More then with ruthlesse Waues, with Sands and Rocks. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.iv.37 | Why, courage then! What cannot be avoided | Why courage then, what cannot be auoided, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.iv.81 | You fight in justice; then in God's name, lords, | You fight in Iustice: then in Gods Name, Lords, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.v.58 | What's worse than murderer, that I may name it? | What's worse then Murtherer, that I may name it? |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.v.71 | What! Wilt thou not? Then, Clarence, do it thou. | What? wilt thou not? Then Clarence do it thou. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.vi.28 | Than can my ears that tragic history. | Then can my eares that Tragicke History. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.vi.33 | Why, then thou art an executioner. | Why then thou art an Executioner. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.vi.49 | Thy mother felt more than a mother's pain, | Thy Mother felt more then a Mothers paine, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.vi.50 | And yet brought forth less than a mother's hope, | And yet brought forth lesse then a Mothers hope, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.vi.78 | Then, since the heavens have shaped my body so, | Then since the Heauens haue shap'd my Body so, |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.vi.88 | And then, to purge his fear, I'll be thy death. | And then to purge his feare, Ile be thy death. |
Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.vi.90 | Clarence, thy turn is next, and then the rest, | Clarence thy turne is next, and then the rest, |
Henry VIII | H8 prologue.29 | Of thousand friends: then, in a moment, see | Of thousand Friends: Then, in a moment, see |
Henry VIII | H8 prologue.31 | And if you can be merry then, I'll say | And if you can be merry then, Ile say, |
Henry VIII | H8 I.i.8 | I was then present, saw them salute on horseback, | I was then present, saw them salute on Horsebacke, |
Henry VIII | H8 I.i.13.2 | Then you lost | Then you lost |
Henry VIII | H8 I.i.118 | Well, we shall then know more, and Buckingham | Well, we shall then know more, & Buckingham |
Henry VIII | H8 I.i.147 | More stronger to direct you than yourself, | More stronger to direct you then your selfe; |
Henry VIII | H8 I.ii.44 | You know no more than others? But you frame | You know no more then others? But you frame |
Henry VIII | H8 I.ii.69 | I have no further gone in this than by | I haue no further gone in this, then by |
Henry VIII | H8 I.ii.81 | Than vainly longing. What we oft do best, | Then vainly longing. What we oft doe best, |
Henry VIII | H8 I.ii.118 | Than ever they were fair. This man so complete, | Then euer they were faire. This man so compleat, |
Henry VIII | H8 I.iii.28 | Abusing better men than they can be | Abusing better men then they can be |
Henry VIII | H8 I.iii.60 | Sparing would show a worse sin than ill doctrine. | Sparing would shew a worse sinne, then ill Doctrine, |
Henry VIII | H8 I.iv.1.2 | a longer table for the guests. Then enter Anne Bullen | a longer Table for the Guests. Then Enter Anne Bullen, |
Henry VIII | H8 I.iv.44 | In their fair cheeks, my lord; then we shall have 'em | In their faire cheekes my Lord, then wee shall haue 'em, |
Henry VIII | H8 I.iv.79 | More worthy this place than myself, to whom, | More worthy this place then my selfe, to whom |
Henry VIII | H8 I.iv.84.2 | Let me see then. | Let me see then, |
Henry VIII | H8 I.iv.107 | To lead 'em once again; and then let's dream | To lead 'em once againe, and then let's dreame |
Henry VIII | H8 II.i.42 | Then deputy of Ireland, who removed, | Then Deputy of Ireland, who remou'd |
Henry VIII | H8 II.i.57 | Hear what I say, and then go home and lose me. | Heare what I say, and then goe home and lose me. |
Henry VIII | H8 II.i.68 | For then my guiltless blood must cry against 'em. | For then, my guiltlesse blood must cry against 'em. |
Henry VIII | H8 II.i.71 | More than I dare make faults. You few that loved me, | More then I dare make faults. / You few that lou'd me, |
Henry VIII | H8 II.i.91 | Longer than I have time to tell his years; | Longer then I haue time to tell his yeares; |
Henry VIII | H8 II.i.96 | Then give my charge up to Sir Nicholas Vaux, | Then giue my Charge vp to Sir Nicholas Vaux, |
Henry VIII | H8 II.i.104 | Yet I am richer than my base accusers | Yet I am richer then my base Accusers, |
Henry VIII | H8 II.i.120 | A little happier than my wretched father: | A little happier then my wretched Father: |
Henry VIII | H8 II.i.142.1 | Greater than this. | Greater then this. |
Henry VIII | H8 II.i.155 | Fresher than e'er it was, and held for certain | Fresher then e're it was; and held for certaine |
Henry VIII | H8 II.ii.123 | Believe me, there's an ill opinion spread then, | Beleeue me, there's an ill opinion spread then, |
Henry VIII | H8 II.iii.8 | To leave a thousandfold more bitter than | To leaue, a thousand fold more bitter, then |
Henry VIII | H8 II.iii.21 | Than to be perked up in a glistering grief | Then to be perk'd vp in a glistring griefe, |
Henry VIII | H8 II.iii.40 | Then you are weakly made. Pluck off a little; | Then you are weakly made; plucke off a little, |
Henry VIII | H8 II.iii.42 | For more than blushing comes to. If your back | For more then blushing comes to: If your backe |
Henry VIII | H8 II.iii.63 | Than Marchioness of Pembroke; to which title | Then Marchionesse of Pembrooke; to which Title, |
Henry VIII | H8 II.iii.67 | More than my all is nothing; nor my prayers | More then my All, is Nothing: Nor my Prayers |
Henry VIII | H8 II.iii.69 | More worth than empty vanities; yet prayers and wishes | More worth, then empty vanities: yet Prayers & Wishes |
Henry VIII | H8 II.iii.98 | Is longer than his foreskirt. By this time | Is longer then his fore-skirt; by this time |
Henry VIII | H8 II.iii.100.1 | Are you not stronger than you were? | Are you not stronger then you were? |
Henry VIII | H8 II.iv.1.7 | purse, with the great seal, and a cardinal's hat; then | Purse, with the great Seale, and a Cardinals Hat: Then |
Henry VIII | H8 II.iv.1.8 | two Priests bearing each a silver cross; then Griffith, | two Priests, bearing each a Siluer Crosse: Then |
Henry VIII | H8 II.iv.1.10 | Sergeant-at-Arms bearing a silver mace; then two | Sergeant at Armes, bearing a Siluer Mace: Then two |
Henry VIII | H8 II.iv.5.1 | You may then spare that time. | You may then spare that time. |
Henry VIII | H8 II.iv.13.3 | his feet; then speaks | his Feete. Then speakes. |
Henry VIII | H8 II.iv.116 | You tender more your person's honour than | You tender more your persons Honor, then |
Henry VIII | H8 II.iv.169 | Then mark th' inducement. Thus it came – give heed to't: | Then marke th'inducement. Thus it came; giue heede too't: |
Henry VIII | H8 II.iv.172 | By th' Bishop of Bayonne, then French ambassador, | By th'Bishop of Bayon, then French Embassador, |
Henry VIII | H8 II.iv.190 | Do no more offices of life to't than | Doe no more Offices of life too't; then |
Henry VIII | H8 II.iv.196 | Be gladded in't by me. Then follows that | Be gladded in't by me. Then followes, that |
Henry VIII | H8 II.iv.204 | I then did feel full sick, and yet not well, | I then did feele full sicke, and yet not well, |
Henry VIII | H8 II.iv.217.2 | I then moved you, | I then mou'd you, |
Henry VIII | H8 III.i.11 | Hung their heads, and then lay by. | Hung their heads, & then lay by. |
Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.88 | There's more in't than fair visage. Bullen! | There's more in't then faire Visage. Bullen? |
Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.97 | Then out it goes. What though I know her virtuous | Then out it goes. What though I know her vertuous |
Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.115 | Then lays his finger on his temple; straight | Then layes his finger on his Temple: straight |
Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.116 | Springs out into fast gait; then stops again, | Springs out into fast gate, then stops againe, |
Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.167 | Showered on me daily, have been more than could | Showr'd on me daily, haue bene more then could |
Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.186 | On you than any, so your hand and heart, | On you, then any: So your Hand, and Heart, |
Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.190.1 | To me, your friend, than any. | To me your Friend, then any. |
Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.192 | More than mine own; that am, have, and will be – | More then mine owne: that am, haue, and will be |
Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.202 | And after, this; and then to breakfast with | And after this, and then to Breakfast with |
Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.208 | Then makes him nothing. I must read this paper: | Then makes him nothing. I must reade this paper: |
Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.222 | I writ to's holiness. Nay then, farewell! | I writ too's Holinesse. Nay then, farewell: |
Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.236 | Till I find more than will or words to do it – | Till I finde more then will, or words to do it, |
Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.251.2 | It must be himself then. | It must be himselfe then. |
Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.254.1 | Have burnt that tongue than said so. | Haue burnt that Tongue, then saide so. |
Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.274 | Dare mate a sounder man than Surrey can be, | Dare mate a sounder man then Surrie can be, |
Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.295 | Worse than the sacring bell, when the brown wench | Worse then the Sacring Bell, when the browne Wench |
Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.309 | I had rather want those than my head. Have at you! | I had rather want those, then my head; / Haue at you. |
Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.313 | Then, that in all you writ to Rome, or else | Then, That in all you writ to Rome, or else |
Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.316.2 | Then, that without the knowledge | Then, that without the knowledge |
Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.326 | Then, that you have sent innumerable substance – | Then, That you haue sent inumerable substance, |
Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.358 | And then he falls, as I do. I have ventured, | And then he fals as I do. I haue ventur'd |
Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.370 | More pangs and fears than wars or women have; | More pangs, and feares then warres, or women haue; |
Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.390 | Than my weak-hearted enemies dare offer. | Then my Weake-hearted Enemies, dare offer. |
Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.422 | Must I then leave you? Must I needs forgo | Must I then leaue you? Must I needes forgo |
Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.441 | By that sin fell the angels. How can man then, | By that sinne fell the Angels: how can man then |
Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.444 | Corruption wins not more than honesty. | Corruption wins not more then Honesty. |
Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.448 | Thy God's, and truth's. Then if thou fall'st, O Cromwell, | Thy Gods, and Truths. Then if thou fall'st (O Cromwell) |
Henry VIII | H8 IV.i.37.4 | 2. Then two Judges | 2 Then, two Iudges. |
Henry VIII | H8 IV.i.37.8 | 5. Mayor of London, bearing the mace. Then Garter, | 5 Maior of London, bearing the Mace. Then Garter, |
Henry VIII | H8 IV.i.37.27 | The procession passes over the stage in order and state, and then a great flourish of trumpets | Exeunt, first passing ouer the Stage in Order and State,and then, A great Flourish of Trumpets. |
Henry VIII | H8 IV.i.56.1 | The end of the procession leaves; and then a great | |
Henry VIII | H8 IV.i.85 | Then rose again, and bowed her to the people; | Then rose againe, and bow'd her to the people: |
Henry VIII | H8 IV.ii.41 | His promises were as he then was, mighty, | His Promises, were as he then was, Mighty: |
Henry VIII | H8 IV.ii.65 | For then, and not till then, he felt himself, | For then, and not till then, he felt himselfe, |
Henry VIII | H8 IV.ii.68 | Than man could give him, he died fearing God. | Then man could giue him; he dy'de, fearing God. |
Henry VIII | H8 IV.ii.83.6 | congie unto her, then dance; and, at certain changes, | Conge vnto her, then Dance: and at certaine Changes, |
Henry VIII | H8 IV.ii.83.8 | which the other four make reverent curtsies. Then the | which the other foure make reuerend Curtsies. Then the |
Henry VIII | H8 IV.ii.171 | Then lay me forth; although unqueened, yet like | Then lay me forth (although vnqueen'd) yet like |
Henry VIII | H8 V.i.15 | In them a wilder nature than the business | In them a wilder Nature, then the businesse |
Henry VIII | H8 V.i.18 | Much weightier than this work. The Queen's in labour, | Much waightier then this worke. The Queens in Labor |
Henry VIII | H8 V.i.113.1 | Than I myself, poor man. | Then I my selfe, poore man. |
Henry VIII | H8 V.i.136 | I mean in perjured witness, than your Master, | I meane in periur'd Witnesse, then your Master, |
Henry VIII | H8 V.i.143 | They shall no more prevail than we give way to. | They shall no more preuaile, then we giue way too: |
Henry VIII | H8 V.iii.15 | Toward the King first, then his laws, in filling | Toward the King first, then his Lawes, in filling |
Henry VIII | H8 V.iii.27 | Farewell all physic – and what follows then? | Farewell all Physicke: and what followes then? |
Henry VIII | H8 V.iii.41 | Defacers of a public peace than I do. | Defacers of a publique peace then I doe: |
Henry VIII | H8 V.iii.57 | More than, I fear, you are provided for. | More then (I feare) you are prouided for. |
Henry VIII | H8 V.iii.63 | Become a churchman better than ambition. | Become a Churchman, better then Ambition: |
Henry VIII | H8 V.iii.83 | Men's prayers then would seek you, not their fears. | Mens prayers then would seeke you, not their feares. |
Henry VIII | H8 V.iii.87 | Then thus for you, my lord: it stands agreed, | Then thus for you my Lord, it stands agreed |
Henry VIII | H8 V.iii.133 | Than but once think this place becomes thee not. | Then but once thinke his place becomes thee not. |
Henry VIII | H8 V.iii.145 | More out of malice than integrity, | More out of Malice then Integrity, |
Henry VIII | H8 V.iii.152 | And fair purgation to the world than malice, | And faire purgation to the world then malice, |
Henry VIII | H8 V.v.1.1 | Enter trumpets, sounding; then two Aldermen, Lord | Enter Trumpets sounding: Then two Aldermen, L. |
Henry VIII | H8 V.v.1.5 | then four noblemen bearing a canopy, under which the | Then foure Noblemen bearing a Canopy, vnder which the |
Henry VIII | H8 V.v.1.8 | then follows the Marchioness Dorset, the other godmother, | Then followes the Marchionesse Dorset, the other Godmother, |
Henry VIII | H8 V.v.25 | Than this pure soul shall be. All princely graces | Then this pure Soule shall be. All Princely Graces |
Henry VIII | H8 V.v.49 | Shall then be his, and like a vine grow to him. | Shall then be his, and like a Vine grow to him; |
Julius Caesar | JC I.i.35 | You blocks, you stones, you worse than senseless things! | You Blockes, you stones, you worse then senslesse things: |
Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.16 | I hear a tongue shriller than all the music | I heare a Tongue shriller then all the Musicke |
Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.46 | Than that poor Brutus, with himself at war, | Then that poore Brutus with himselfe at warre, |
Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.48 | Then, Brutus, I have much mistook your passion, | Then Brutus, I haue much mistook your passion, |
Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.78 | To all the rout, then hold me dangerous. | To all the Rout, then hold me dangerous. |
Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.81 | Then must I think you would not have it so. | Then must I thinke you would not haue it so. |
Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.89 | The name of honour more than I fear death. | The name of Honor, more then I feare death. |
Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.142 | Why should that name be sounded more than yours? | Why should that name be sounded more then yours. |
Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.152 | But it was famed with more than with one man? | But it was fam'd with more then with one man? |
Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.170 | Till then, my noble friend, chew upon this: | Till then, my Noble Friend, chew vpon this: |
Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.172 | Than to repute himself a son of Rome | Then to repute himselfe a Sonne of Rome |
Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.208 | Whiles they behold a greater than themselves, | Whiles they behold a greater then themselues, |
Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.211 | Than what I fear; for always I am Caesar. | Then what I feare: for alwayes I am Casar. |
Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.218 | I should not then ask Casca what had chanced. | I should not then aske Caska what had chanc'd. |
Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.221 | and then the people fell a-shouting. | and then the people fell a shouting. |
Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.228 | time gentler than other; and at every putting-by mine | time gentler then other; and at euery putting by, mine |
Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.238 | had it. Then he offered it to him again; then he put it by | had it. Then hee offered it to him againe: then hee put it by |
Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.240 | fingers off it. And then he offered it the third time; he | fingers off it. And then he offered it the third time; hee |
Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.304 | I will do so: till then, think of the world. | I will doe so: till then, thinke of the World. |
Julius Caesar | JC I.iii.39 | Good night then, Casca: this disturbed sky | Good-night then, Caska: This disturbed Skie |
Julius Caesar | JC I.iii.76 | A man no mightier than thyself, or me, | A man no mightier then thy selfe, or me, |
Julius Caesar | JC I.iii.89 | I know where I will wear this dagger then: | I know where I will weare this Dagger then; |
Julius Caesar | JC I.iii.103 | And why should Caesar be a tyrant then? | And why should Casar be a Tyrant then? |
Julius Caesar | JC I.iii.113 | Before a willing bondman; then I know | Before a willing Bond-man: then I know |
Julius Caesar | JC II.i.16 | And then, I grant, we put a sting in him | And then I graunt we put a Sting in him, |
Julius Caesar | JC II.i.21 | More than his reason. But 'tis a common proof, | More then his Reason. But 'tis a common proofe, |
Julius Caesar | JC II.i.25 | He then unto the ladder turns his back, | He then vnto the Ladder turnes his Backe, |
Julius Caesar | JC II.i.28 | Then, lest he may, prevent. And, since the quarrel | Then least he may, preuent. And since the Quarrell |
Julius Caesar | JC II.i.67 | Are then in council; and the state of man, | Are then in councell; and the state of a man, |
Julius Caesar | JC II.i.68 | Like to a little kingdom, suffers then | Like to a little Kingdome, suffers then |
Julius Caesar | JC II.i.79 | When evils are most free? O then, by day | When euills are most free? O then, by day |
Julius Caesar | JC II.i.122 | The melting spirits of women, then, countrymen, | The melting Spirits of women. Then Countrymen, |
Julius Caesar | JC II.i.125 | Than secret Romans that have spoke the word, | Then secret Romans, that haue spoke the word, |
Julius Caesar | JC II.i.127 | Than honesty to honesty engaged | Then Honesty to Honesty ingag'd, |
Julius Caesar | JC II.i.152.2 | Then leave him out. | Then leaue him out. |
Julius Caesar | JC II.i.163 | To cut the head off and then hack the limbs, | To cut the Head off, and then hacke the Limbes: |
Julius Caesar | JC II.i.169 | O, that we then could come by Caesar's spirit, | O that we then could come by Casars Spirit, |
Julius Caesar | JC II.i.182 | For he can do no more than Caesar's arm | For he can do no more then Casars Arme, |
Julius Caesar | JC II.i.208 | He says he does, being then most flattered. | He sayes, he does; being then most flattered. |
Julius Caesar | JC II.i.214 | Be that the uttermost, and fail not then. | Be that the vttermost, and faile not then. |
Julius Caesar | JC II.i.243 | I urged you further; then you scratched your head, | I vrg'd you further, then you scratch'd your head, |
Julius Caesar | JC II.i.291 | If this were true, then should I know this secret. | If this were true, then should I know this secret. |
Julius Caesar | JC II.i.296 | Think you I am no stronger than my sex, | Thinke you, I am no stronger then my Sex |
Julius Caesar | JC II.i.334.2 | Follow me then. | Follow me then. |
Julius Caesar | JC II.ii.45 | That Caesar is more dangerous than he. | That Casar is more dangerous then he. |
Julius Caesar | JC III.i.49 | Is there no voice more worthy than my own, | Is there no voyce more worthy then my owne, |
Julius Caesar | JC III.i.77 | Et tu, Brute? – Then fall Caesar! | Et Tu Brute? ---Then fall Casar. |
Julius Caesar | JC III.i.103 | Grant that, and then is death a benefit: | Grant that, and then is Death a Benefit: |
Julius Caesar | JC III.i.108 | Then walk we forth, even to the market-place, | Then walke we forth, euen to the Market place, |
Julius Caesar | JC III.i.111 | Stoop then, and wash. How many ages hence | Stoop then, and wash. How many Ages hence |
Julius Caesar | JC III.i.116.1 | No worthier than the dust! | No worthier then the dust? |
Julius Caesar | JC III.i.181 | And then we will deliver you the cause | And then, we will deliuer you the cause, |
Julius Caesar | JC III.i.195 | If then thy spirit look upon us now, | If then thy Spirit looke vpon vs now, |
Julius Caesar | JC III.i.196 | Shall it not grieve thee dearer than thy death, | Shall it not greeue thee deerer then thy death, |
Julius Caesar | JC III.i.202 | It would become me better than to close | It would become me better, then to close |
Julius Caesar | JC III.i.213 | Then, in a friend, it is cold modesty. | Then, in a Friend, it is cold Modestie. |
Julius Caesar | JC III.i.242 | It shall advantage more than do us wrong. | It shall aduantage more, then do vs wrong. |
Julius Caesar | JC III.i.253 | Prepare the body, then, and follow us. | Prepare the body then, and follow vs. |
Julius Caesar | JC III.ii.2 | Then follow me, and give me audience, friends. | Then follow me, and giue me Audience friends. |
Julius Caesar | JC III.ii.19 | that Brutus' love to Caesar was no less than his. If then | that Brutus loue to Casar, was no lesse then his. If then, |
Julius Caesar | JC III.ii.23 | and die all slaves, than that Caesar were dead, to live | and dye all Slaues; then that Casar were dead, to liue |
Julius Caesar | JC III.ii.36 | Then none have I offended. I have done no more | Then none haue I offended. I haue done no more |
Julius Caesar | JC III.ii.37 | to Caesar than you shall do to Brutus. The question of | to Casar, then you shall do to Brutus. The Question of |
Julius Caesar | JC III.ii.104 | What cause withholds you then to mourn for him? | What cause with-holds you then, to mourne for him? |
Julius Caesar | JC III.ii.117 | There's not a nobler man in Rome than Antony. | There's not a Nobler man in Rome then Antony. |
Julius Caesar | JC III.ii.128 | Than I will wrong such honourable men. | Then I will wrong such Honourable men. |
Julius Caesar | JC III.ii.158 | You will compel me then to read the will? | You will compell me then to read the Will: |
Julius Caesar | JC III.ii.159 | Then make a ring about the corpse of Caesar, | Then make a Ring about the Corpes of Casar, |
Julius Caesar | JC III.ii.186 | Ingratitude, more strong than traitors' arms, | Ingratitude, more strong then Traitors armes, |
Julius Caesar | JC III.ii.187 | Quite vanquished him: then burst his mighty heart; | Quite vanquish'd him: then burst his Mighty heart, |
Julius Caesar | JC III.ii.192 | Then I, and you, and all of us fell down, | Then I, and you, and all of vs fell downe, |
Julius Caesar | JC III.ii.233 | Away then! Come, seek the conspirators. | Away then, come, seeke the Conspirators. |
Julius Caesar | JC III.ii.238 | Alas, you know not! I must tell you then: | Alas you know not, I must tell you then: |
Julius Caesar | JC III.iii.14 | do I dwell? Am I a married man or a bachelor? Then to | do I dwell? Am I a married man, or a Batchellour? Then to |
Julius Caesar | JC IV.i.1 | These many then shall die; their names are pricked. | These many then shall die, their names are prickt |
Julius Caesar | JC IV.i.18 | Octavius, I have seen more days than you; | Octauius, I haue seene more dayes then you, |
Julius Caesar | JC IV.i.25 | Then take we down his load, and turn him off, | Then take we downe his Load, and turne him off |
Julius Caesar | JC IV.ii.46 | Then in my tent, Cassius, enlarge your griefs, | Then in my Tent Cassius enlarge your Greefes, |
Julius Caesar | JC IV.iii.28.1 | Than such a Roman. | Then such a Roman. |
Julius Caesar | JC IV.iii.31 | Older in practice, abler than yourself | Older in practice, Abler then your selfe |
Julius Caesar | JC IV.iii.73 | And drop my blood for drachmas, than to wring | And drop my blood for Drachmaes, then to wring |
Julius Caesar | JC IV.iii.86 | But Brutus makes mine greater than they are. | But Brutus makes mine greater then they are. |
Julius Caesar | JC IV.iii.101 | Dearer than Pluto's mine, richer than gold: | Deerer then Pluto's Mine, Richer then Gold: |
Julius Caesar | JC IV.iii.106.1 | Than ever thou lovedst Cassius. | Then euer thou loued'st Cassius. |
Julius Caesar | JC IV.iii.130 | For I have seen more years, I'm sure, than ye. | For I haue seene more yeeres I'me sure then yee. |
Julius Caesar | JC IV.iii.186 | Then like a Roman bear the truth I tell; | Then like a Roman, beare the truth I tell, |
Julius Caesar | JC IV.iii.222.2 | Then, with your will, go on; | Then with your will go on: wee'l along |
Julius Caesar | JC IV.iii.282 | Well; then I shall see thee again? | Well: then I shall see thee againe? |
Julius Caesar | JC IV.iii.284 | Why, I will see thee at Philippi then. | Why I will see thee at Philippi then: |
Julius Caesar | JC V.i.29 | Good words are better than bad strokes, Octavius. | Good words are better then bad strokes Octauius. |
Julius Caesar | JC V.i.97 | If we do lose this battle, then is this | If we do lose this Battaile, then is this |
Julius Caesar | JC V.i.99 | What are you then determined to do? | What are you then determined to do? |
Julius Caesar | JC V.i.107.2 | Then, if we lose this battle, | Then, if we loose this Battaile, |
Julius Caesar | JC V.i.118 | If not, why then this parting was well made. | If not, why then this parting was well made. |
Julius Caesar | JC V.i.122 | Why then, lead on. O, that a man might know | Why then leade on. O that a man might know |
Julius Caesar | JC V.i.125 | And then the end is known. Come, ho! Away! | And then the end is knowne. Come ho, away. |
Julius Caesar | JC V.iii.38 | And then I swore thee, saving of thy life, | And then I swore thee, sauing of thy life, |
Julius Caesar | JC V.iii.102 | To this dead man than you shall see me pay. | To this dead man, then you shall see me pay. |
Julius Caesar | JC V.iv.29 | Such men my friends than enemies. Go on, | Such men my Friends, then Enemies. Go on, |
Julius Caesar | JC V.v.7.1 | Peace then. No words. | Peace then, no words. |
Julius Caesar | JC V.v.25 | Than tarry till they push us. Good Volumnius, | Then tarry till they push vs. Good Volumnius, |
Julius Caesar | JC V.v.37 | More than Octavius and Mark Antony | More then Octauius, and Marke Antony, |
Julius Caesar | JC V.v.47 | Hold then my sword, and turn away thy face, | Hold then my Sword, and turne away thy face, |
Julius Caesar | JC V.v.66 | Octavius, then take him to follow thee, | Octauius, then take him to follow thee, |
King Edward III | E3 I.i.38 | What then should subjects but embrace their king? | What then should subiects but imbrace their King, |
King Edward III | E3 I.i.40 | Than striving to rebate a tyrant's pride | Then stryuing to rebate a tyrants pride, |
King Edward III | E3 I.i.87 | Then, Edward, here, in spite of all thy lords, | Then Edward here in spight of all thy Lords, |
King Edward III | E3 I.i.104 | Than when reproach with violence is borne. | Then when reproch with violence is borne, |
King Edward III | E3 I.i.168 | Then cheerfully forward, each a several way; | Then cheerefully forward ech a seuerall way, |
King Edward III | E3 I.ii.45 | Why then, my liege, let me enjoy her jewels. | Why then my liege let me enioy her iewels, |
King Edward III | E3 I.ii.98 | Hath she been fairer, Warwick, than she is? | Hath she been fairer Warwike then she is? |
King Edward III | E3 I.ii.107 | In duty lower than the ground I kneel, | In duetie lower then the ground I kneele, |
King Edward III | E3 I.ii.123 | Then, dear my liege, now niggard not thy state. | Then deare my liege, now niggard not thy state, |
King Edward III | E3 I.ii.128 | No farther off than her conspiring eye, | No farther off, then her conspyring eye, |
King Edward III | E3 I.ii.134 | More than the sun steals mine own light from me. | More then the Sunne steales myne owne light from mee: |
King Edward III | E3 I.ii.140 | That more persuades than winning oratory? | That more perswads then winning Oratorie. |
King Edward III | E3 I.ii.144 | Than thou wilt grace our inner house withal. | Then thou wilt grace our inner house withall, |
King Edward III | E3 I.ii.160 | More gracious than my terms can, let thee be. | More gratious then my tearmes can let thee be, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.6 | Lo, when she blushed, even then did he look pale, | Loe when shee blusht, euen then did he looke pale, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.12 | Than brick to coral, or live things to dead. | Then Bricke to Corrall, or liue things to dead, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.13 | Why did he then thus counterfeit her looks? | Why did he then thus counterfeit her lookes, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.22 | Then, Scottish wars, farewell! I fear 'twill prove | Then Scottish warres farewell, I feare twill prooue |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.26 | Her voice more silver every word than other, | Her voice more siluer euery word then other, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.29 | ‘ Even thus,’ quoth she, ‘ he spake,’ and then spoke broad, | Euen thus quoth she, he spake, and then spoke broad, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.31 | But somewhat better than the Scot could speak. | But somewhat better then the Scot could speake, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.32 | ‘ And thus ’ quoth she, and answered then herself, | And thus quoth she, and answered then herselfe, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.61 | Then in the summer arbour sit by me; | Then in the sommer arber sit by me, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.74 | Then, if thou be a poet, move thou so, | Then if thou be a Poet moue thou so, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.84 | ‘ Better than beautiful ’ thou must begin. | Better then bewtifull thou must begin, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.85 | Devise for fair a fairer word than fair, | Deuise for faire a fairer word then faire, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.103 | Then mayst thou judge what her condition is | Then maist thou iudge what her condition is, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.115 | Her hair, far softer than the silkworm's twist, | Her hair far softor then the silke wormes twist, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.135 | Hers more than most, mine most and more than more; | Hers more then most, myne most, and more then more, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.136 | Hers more to praise than tell the sea by drops, | Hers more to praise then tell the sea by drops, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.137 | Nay, more than drop the massy earth by sands, | Nay more then drop the massie earth by sands, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.139 | Then wherefore talk'st thou of a period | Then wherefore talkest thou of a period, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.142 | ‘ More fair and chaste than is the queen of shades ’ | More faire and chast then is the queen of shades: |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.154 | For I had rather have her chased than chaste. | For I had rather haue her chased then chast, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.157 | Say she hath thrice more splendour than the sun, | Say shee hath thrice more splendour then the sun, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.168 | ‘ More fair and chaste than is the queen of shades, | More faire and chast then is the louer of shades, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.170.1 | In constancy than who? | In constancie then who, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.170.2 | ‘ than Judith was.’ | Then Iudith was, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.175 | I thank thee, then. Thou hast done little ill, | I thancke thee then thou hast don litle ill, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.204 | How near then shall I be to remedy? | How neere then shall I be to remedie. |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.207 | If thou speak'st true, then have I my redress: | Yf thou speakst true then haue I my redresse, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.212 | Then take thyself a little way aside, | Then take thy selfe a litel waie a side, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.246 | I wish no more of thee than thou mayst give, | I wish no more of thee then thou maist giue, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.262 | You break a greater honour than yourself. | You breake a greater honor then your selfe, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.264 | Than to be married: your progenitor, | Then to be maried, your progenitour |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.354 | Were to profane the idol than confound it. | Were to prophaine the Idoll then confound it, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.377 | Then ‘ wife of Salisbury ’ shall I so begin? | Then wife of Salisbury shall I so begin: |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.387 | Hath power to take thine honour; then consent | Hath power to take thy honor, then consent, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.388 | To pawn thine honour rather than thy life. | To pawne thine honor rather then thy life; |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.419 | No marvel though the branch be then infected, | No maruell though the braunches be then infected, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.423 | Why then, give sin a passport to offend | Why then giue sinne a pasport to offend, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.434 | Than the polluted closet of a king; | Then the polluted closet of a king, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.438 | Presents a greater substance than it is; | Presents agreater substaunce then it is: |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.452 | Lilies that fester smell far worse than weeds; | Lillies that fester, smel far worse then weeds, |
King Edward III | E3 II.i.456 | Which then convert to a most heavy curse | Which then conuert to a most heauie curse, |
King Edward III | E3 II.ii.12 | Then via for the spacious bounds of France! | Then via for the spatious bounds of Fraunce; |
King Edward III | E3 II.ii.20 | Undoubtedly then something is amiss. | Vndoubtedly then some thing is a misse. |
King Edward III | E3 II.ii.32 | Then let those foot trudge hence upon those horse, | Then let those foote trudge hence vpon those horse, |
King Edward III | E3 II.ii.43 | What says the more than Cleopatra's match | Ki. What saies the more then Cleopatras match, |
King Edward III | E3 II.ii.97 | I go to conquer kings; and shall I not then | I go to conquer kings, andshall I not then |
King Edward III | E3 II.ii.113 | Than to embrace in an unlawful bed | Then to embrace in an vnlawfull bed, |
King Edward III | E3 II.ii.120 | To speak the more than heavenly word of yea | To speake the more then heauenly word of yea, |
King Edward III | E3 II.ii.126 | Than right for right, and render love for love. | Then right for right, and render loue for loue. |
King Edward III | E3 II.ii.127 | Than wrong for wrong, and endless hate for hate. | Then wrong for wrong, and endles hate for hate: |
King Edward III | E3 II.ii.137 | Name them, fair Countess, and by heaven I will. | Name then faire Countesse, and by heauen I will. |
King Edward III | E3 II.ii.151 | Fairer thou art by far than Hero was, | Fairer thou art by farre, then Hero was, |
King Edward III | E3 II.ii.176 | When they are gone, then I'll consent to love. – | When they are gone, then Ile consent to loue: |
King Edward III | E3 II.ii.179 | Than thy prevention can be in my rescue; | Then thy preuention can be in my rescue, |
King Edward III | E3 II.ii.193 | May better boast of than ever Roman might | May better boast of then euer Romaine might, |
King Edward III | E3 III.i.58 | Then Bayard-like, blind overweening Ned, | Then Bayardlike, blinde ouerweaning Ned, |
King Edward III | E3 III.i.87 | No otherwise then were their sails with wind, | No otherwise then were their sailes with winde, |
King Edward III | E3 III.i.130 | Affrights not more than kings when they dispose | Affrights not more then kings when they dispose, |
King Edward III | E3 III.i.155 | Then 'gan the day to turn to gloomy night, | Then gan the day to turne to gloomy night, |
King Edward III | E3 III.i.169 | Then might ye see the reeling vessels split, | Then might ye see the reeling vessels split, |
King Edward III | E3 III.i.178 | So did the Black Snake of Boulogne, than which | So did the blacke snake of Bullen, then which |
King Edward III | E3 III.i.185 | Then rests there nothing but with present speed | Then rests there nothing but with present speede, |
King Edward III | E3 III.ii.10 | What then? | What then? |
King Edward III | E3 III.ii.11 | What then, quoth you? Why, is't not time to fly, | What then quoth you? why ist not time to flie, |
King Edward III | E3 III.ii.18 | And then too late he would redeem his time, | And then too late he would redeeme his time, |
King Edward III | E3 III.ii.21 | Than when he sees it doth begin to rain | Then when he sees it doth begin to raigne, |
King Edward III | E3 III.ii.27 | Belike you then despair of ill success, | Be like you then dispaire of ill successe, |
King Edward III | E3 III.ii.30 | Yet rather fight than, like unnatural sons, | Yet rather fight, then like vnnaturall sonnes, |
King Edward III | E3 III.iii.7 | Then, Gobin, for the service thou hast done, | Then Gobin for the seruice thou hast done, |
King Edward III | E3 III.iii.64 | Thy labour rather to be feared than loved, | They labour rather to be feared then loued, |
King Edward III | E3 III.iii.73 | Then is thy salutation honey-sweet; | Then is thy sallutation hony sweete, |
King Edward III | E3 III.iii.135 | Judge then, conspirators, by this descent, | Iudge then conspiratours by this descent, |
King Edward III | E3 III.iii.151 | Then, to protect your country and your king, | Then to protect your Country and your King, |
King Edward III | E3 III.iii.163 | Then, Frenchmen, scorn that such should be your lords, | Then French men scorne that such should be your Lords |
King Edward III | E3 III.iii.210 | No otherwise than did old Jacob's words, | No other wise then did ould Iacobes wordes, |
King Edward III | E3 III.iii.219 | Then thus our steeled battles shall be ranged: | Then this our steelde Battailes shall be rainged, |
King Edward III | E3 III.iv.1 | Alarum. Enter a many Frenchmen flying. After them Prince Edward running. Then enter King John and the Duke of Lorraine | Alarum. Enter a many French men flying. After them Prince Edward runing. Then enter King Iohn and Duke of Loraine. |
King Edward III | E3 III.iv.2 | Our number is far greater than our foe's. | Our nomber is far greater then our foes, |
King Edward III | E3 III.iv.11 | Than by the enemy a thousandfold. | Then by the ennimie a thousand fold. |
King Edward III | E3 III.iv.34 | Then will he win a world of honour too, | Then will he win a world of honor to, |
King Edward III | E3 III.iv.37 | Than one, to comfort our declining age. | Then one to comfort our declyning age. |
King Edward III | E3 III.iv.53 | Why, then his epitaph is lasting praise. | Why then his Ephitaph, is lasting prayse. |
King Edward III | E3 III.iv.66 | Than if they were but babes or captive slaves. | Then if they were but babes or Captiue slaues. |
King Edward III | E3 III.iv.67 | O cruel father! Farewell Edward, then. | O cruell Father, farewell Edward then. |
King Edward III | E3 III.iv.96 | And then new courage made me fresh again, | And then new courage made me fresh againe, |
King Edward III | E3 IV.i.32 | And then thou shalt be set at liberty. | And then thou shalt be set at libertie, |
King Edward III | E3 IV.ii.16 | Far worse than is the quiet sleep of death. | Farre worse then is the quiet sleepe of death: |
King Edward III | E3 IV.ii.23 | But how do you imagine then to speed? | But how do you imagine then to speed? |
King Edward III | E3 IV.ii.54 | Well, then we'll have a pursuivant dispatched | Well then wele haue a Pursiuaunt dispatch, |
King Edward III | E3 IV.ii.67 | They will so? Then, belike, they may command, | They wil so: Then belike they may command, |
King Edward III | E3 IV.ii.85 | And better some do go to wrack, than all. | And better some do go to wrack then all. |
King Edward III | E3 IV.iii.18 | Why, then I know the extremity, my lord: | Why then I know the extremitie my Loid, |
King Edward III | E3 IV.iii.54 | And then I will attend your highness' pleasure. | And then I will attend your highnes pleasure. |
King Edward III | E3 IV.iii.70 | Then think on him that doth not now dissemble, | Then thinke on him that doth not now dissemble |
King Edward III | E3 IV.iv.14 | His party stronger battled than our whole. | His partie stronger battaild then our whole: |
King Edward III | E3 IV.iv.35 | Then thus it stands: the valley for our flight | Then thus it stands, the valleie for our flight, |
King Edward III | E3 IV.iv.40 | Death's name is much more mighty than his deeds: | Deathes name is much more mightie then his deeds, |
King Edward III | E3 IV.iv.44 | Are but my handful of so many sands, | Then all the world, and call it but a power: |
King Edward III | E3 IV.iv.49 | Which briefly is no more indeed than one. | Which briefelie is no more indeed then one, |
King Edward III | E3 IV.iv.64 | And we have one. Then apprehend no odds, | And we haue one, then apprehend no ods, |
King Edward III | E3 IV.iv.75 | Than e'er was buried in our Breton earth. | Then ere was buried in our Bryttish earth, |
King Edward III | E3 IV.iv.116 | Then render back this commonplace of prayer | Then render backe this common place of prayer, |
King Edward III | E3 IV.iv.138 | First bud we, then we blow, and after seed, | First bud we, then we blow, and after seed, |
King Edward III | E3 IV.iv.139 | Then presently we fall; and, as a shade | Then presently we fall, and as a shade |
King Edward III | E3 IV.iv.141 | If then we hunt for death, why do we fear it? | If then we hunt for death, why do we feare it? |
King Edward III | E3 IV.iv.146 | If we fear not, then no resolved proffer | If wee feare not, then no resolued proffer, |
King Edward III | E3 IV.v.93 | Then, arms, adieu, and let them fight that list. | Then armes adieu, and let them fight that list, |
King Edward III | E3 IV.v.103 | Dwell'st thou on precedents? Then be it so! | Dwelst thou on presidents, then be it so, |
King Edward III | E3 IV.v.107 | Then, Salisbury, say whither thou art bound. | Then Salisburie, say whether thou art bound. |
King Edward III | E3 IV.v.109 | To Calais, Salisbury? Then to Calais pack, | To Callice Salisburie, then to Callice packe, |
King Edward III | E3 IV.vi.4 | Breathe, then, and to it again. The amazed French | Breath then, and too it againe, the amazed French |
King Edward III | E3 IV.vi.51 | Then charge again. If heaven be not opposed, | Then charge againe, if heauen be not opposd |
King Edward III | E3 IV.vii.61 | Within an easy litter. Then we'll march | With in an easie Litter, then wele martch. |
King Edward III | E3 V.i.32 | If it be so, then let our covenant stand: | If it be so, then let our couenant stand, |
King Edward III | E3 V.i.59 | Learn then to reverence Edward as your king. | Learne then to reuerence Edw. as your king. |
King Edward III | E3 V.i.69 | What moved thee, then, to be so obstinate | What moude thee then to be so obstinate, |
King Edward III | E3 V.i.118 | More full of honour than his angry sire, | More full of honor then his angry syre, |
King Edward III | E3 V.i.123 | And, sooner than he thinks, we'll be with him, | And sooner then he thinkes wele be with him: |
King Edward III | E3 V.i.149 | Then sound the trumpets' clangour in the air; | Then sound the Trumpets clangor in the aire, |
King Edward III | E3 V.i.201 | Than we did think for, and 'tis so indeed. | Then we did thinke for, and tis so in deed, |
King Edward III | E3 V.i.241 | God willing, then for England we'll be shipped; | God willing then for England wele be shipt, |
King John | KJ I.i.21 | Then take my King's defiance from my mouth, | Then take my Kings defiance from my mouth, |
King John | KJ I.i.40 | Your strong possession much more than your right, | Your strong possessiõ much more then your right, |
King John | KJ I.i.58 | You came not of one mother then, it seems. | You came not of one mother then it seemes. |
King John | KJ I.i.114 | Then, good my liege, let me have what is mine, | Then good my Liedge let me haue what is mine, |
King John | KJ I.i.125 | In sooth he might. Then, if he were my brother's, | Insooth he might: then if he were my brothers, |
King John | KJ I.i.130 | Shall then my father's will be of no force | Shal then my fathers Will be of no force, |
King John | KJ I.i.133 | Than was his will to get me, as I think. | Then was his will to get me, as I think. |
King John | KJ I.i.179 | For France, for France, for it is more than need. | For France, for France, for it is more then need. |
King John | KJ I.i.182 | A foot of honour better than I was, | Bast. A foot of Honor better then I was, |
King John | KJ I.i.192 | Why then I suck my teeth and catechize | Why then I sucke my teeth, and catechize |
King John | KJ I.i.196 | And then comes answer like an Absey book: | And then comes answer like an Absey booke: |
King John | KJ I.i.249 | Then, good my mother, let me know my father; | Then good my mother, let me know my father, |
King John | KJ II.i.30 | Salute thee for her king. Till then, fair boy, | Salute thee for her King, till then faire boy |
King John | KJ II.i.37 | Well then, to work! Our cannon shall be bent | Well, then to worke our Cannon shall be bent |
King John | KJ II.i.48 | And then we shall repent each drop of blood | And then we shall repent each drop of bloud, |
King John | KJ II.i.54 | Then turn your forces from this paltry siege | Then turne your forces from this paltry siege, |
King John | KJ II.i.73 | Than now the English bottoms have waft o'er | Then now the English bottomes haue waft o're, |
King John | KJ II.i.83 | Let them be welcome then. We are prepared! | Let them be welcome then, we are prepar'd. |
King John | KJ II.i.107 | How comes it then that thou art called a king, | How comes it then that thou art call'd a King, |
King John | KJ II.i.127 | Than thou and John in manners – being as like | Then thou and Iohn, in manners being as like, |
King John | KJ II.i.158 | Than e'er the coward hand of France can win. | Then ere the coward hand of France can win; |
King John | KJ II.i.244 | Than the constraint of hospitable zeal | Then the constraint of hospitable zeale, |
King John | KJ II.i.246 | Religiously provokes. Be pleased then | Religiously prouokes. Be pleased then |
King John | KJ II.i.249 | And then our arms, like to a muzzled bear, | And then our Armes, like to a muzled Beare, |
King John | KJ II.i.263 | Then tell us, shall your city call us lord | Then tell vs, Shall your Citie call vs Lord, |
King John | KJ II.i.269 | Acknowledge then the King, and let me in. | Acknowledge then the King, and let me in. |
King John | KJ II.i.283 | Then God forgive the sin of all those souls | Then God forgiue the sinne of all those soules, |
King John | KJ II.i.297 | Speed then, to take advantage of the field. | Speed then to take aduantage of the field. |
King John | KJ II.i.342 | In this hot trial, more than we of France; | In this hot triall more then we of France, |
King John | KJ II.i.359 | Then let confusion of one part confirm | Then let confusion of one part confirm |
King John | KJ II.i.360 | The other's peace. Till then, blows, blood, and death! | The others peace: till then, blowes, blood, and death. |
King John | KJ II.i.368 | A greater power then we denies all this. | A greater powre then We denies all this, |
King John | KJ II.i.391 | Then, in a moment, Fortune shall cull forth | Then in a moment Fortune shall cull forth |
King John | KJ II.i.400 | Then after fight who shall be king of it? | Then after fight who shall be king of it? |
King John | KJ II.i.406 | Why, then defy each other, and pell-mell | Why then defie each other, and pell-mell, |
King John | KJ II.i.427 | Where should he find it fairer than in Blanche? | Where should he finde it fairer, then in Blanch: |
King John | KJ II.i.429 | Where should he find it purer than in Blanche? | Where should he finde it purer then in Blanch? |
King John | KJ II.i.431 | Whose veins bound richer blood than Lady Blanche? | Whose veines bound richer blood then Lady Blanch? |
King John | KJ II.i.446 | This union shall do more than battery can | This Vnion shall do more then batterie can |
King John | KJ II.i.448 | With swifter spleen than powder can enforce, | With swifter spleene then powder can enforce |
King John | KJ II.i.465 | But buffets better than a fist of France. | But buffets better then a fist of France: |
King John | KJ II.i.518 | Than this: that nothing do I see in you, | Then this, that nothing do I see in you, |
King John | KJ II.i.524 | Speak then, Prince Dauphin. Can you love this lady? | Speake then Prince Dolphin, can you loue this Ladie? |
King John | KJ II.i.527 | Then do I give Volquessen, Touraine, Maine, | Then I doe giue Volquessen, Toraine, Maine, |
King John | KJ II.i.595 | And being rich, my virtue then shall be | And being rich, my vertue then shall be, |
King John | KJ III.i.25 | Then speak again – not all thy former tale, | Then speake againe, not all thy former tale, |
King John | KJ III.i.34 | Lewis marry Blanche! O boy, then where art thou? | Lewes marry Blaunch? O boy, then where art thou? |
King John | KJ III.i.48 | I would not care, I then would be content, | I would not care, I then would be content, |
King John | KJ III.i.49 | For then I should not love thee; no, nor thou | For then I should not loue thee: no, nor thou |
King John | KJ III.i.172 | Then, by the lawful power that I have, | Then by the lawfull power that I haue, |
King John | KJ III.i.215 | O then, tread down my need, and faith mounts up; | O then tread downe my need, and faith mounts vp, |
King John | KJ III.i.234 | No longer than we well could wash our hands | No longer then we well could wash our hands, |
King John | KJ III.i.251 | Some gentle order, and then we shall be blessed | Some gentle order, and then we shall be blest |
King John | KJ III.i.261 | Than keep in peace that hand which thou dost hold. | Then keepe in peace that hand which thou dost hold. |
King John | KJ III.i.273 | The truth is then most done not doing it. | The truth is then most done not doing it: |
King John | KJ III.i.291 | Than arm thy constant and thy nobler parts | Then arme thy constant and thy nobler parts |
King John | KJ III.i.294 | If thou vouchsafe them. But if not, then know | If thou vouchsafe them. But if not, then know |
King John | KJ III.i.314 | Be stronger with thee than the name of wife? | Be stronger with thee, then the name of wife? |
King John | KJ III.i.325 | Is it as he will? Well then, France shall rue. | Is it as he will? well then, France shall rue. |
King John | KJ III.i.347 | No more than he that threats. To arms let's hie! | No more then he that threats. To Arms le'ts hie. |
King John | KJ III.iii.52 | Then, in despite of brooded watchful day, | Then, in despight of brooded watchfull day, |
King John | KJ III.iv.39 | Then with a passion would I shake the world, | Then with a passion would I shake the world, |
King John | KJ III.iv.49 | For then 'tis like I should forget myself! | For then 'tis like I should forget my selfe: |
King John | KJ III.iv.98 | Then, have I reason to be fond of grief? | Then, haue I reason to be fond of griefe? |
King John | KJ III.iv.100 | I could give better comfort than you do. | I could giue better comfort then you doe. |
King John | KJ III.iv.139 | That John may stand, then Arthur needs must fall. | That Iohn may stand, then Arthur needs must fall, |
King John | KJ III.iv.143 | May then make all the claim that Arthur did. | May then make all the claime that Arthur did. |
King John | KJ III.iv.164 | Even at that news he dies; and then the hearts | Euen at that newes he dies: and then the hearts |
King John | KJ III.iv.171 | Than I have named! The bastard Faulconbridge | Then I haue nam'd. The Bastard Falconbridge |
King John | KJ IV.i.31 | I warrant I love you more than you do me. | I warrant I loue you more then you do me. |
King John | KJ IV.i.56 | Why then you must. Will you put out mine eyes – | Why then you must. Will you put out mine eyes? |
King John | KJ IV.i.67 | Are you more stubborn-hard than hammered iron? | Are you more stubborne hard, then hammer'd Iron? |
King John | KJ IV.i.86 | Alas, I then have chid away my friend! | Alas, I then haue chid away my friend, |
King John | KJ IV.i.94 | Then feeling what small things are boisterous there, | Then feeling what small things are boysterous there, |
King John | KJ IV.ii.28 | When workmen strive to do better than well, | When Workemen striue to do better then wel, |
King John | KJ IV.ii.34 | Than did the fault before it was so patched. | Then did the fault before it was so patch'd. |
King John | KJ IV.ii.42 | And more, more strong, when lesser is my fear, | And more, more strong, then lesser is my feare |
King John | KJ IV.ii.47 | Then I, as one that am the tongue of these | Then I, as one that am the tongue of these |
King John | KJ IV.ii.56 | Why then your fears, which, as they say, attend | Why then your feares, which (as they say) attend |
King John | KJ IV.ii.65 | Than whereupon our weal, on you depending, | Then, whereupon our weale on you depending, |
King John | KJ IV.ii.128 | How wildly then walks my estate in France! | How wildely then walkes my Estate in France? |
King John | KJ IV.ii.136 | Then let the worst unheard fall on your bead. | Then let the worst vn-heard, fall on your head. |
King John | KJ IV.ii.214 | More upon humour than advised respect. | More vpon humor, then aduis'd respect. |
King John | KJ IV.ii.217 | Is to be made, then shall this hand and seal | Is to be made, then shall this hand and Seale |
King John | KJ IV.ii.259 | Than to be butcher of an innocent child. | Then to be butcher of an innocent childe. |
King John | KJ IV.ii.266 | Presented thee more hideous than thou art. | Presented thee more hideous then thou art. |
King John | KJ IV.iii.17 | Is much more general than these lines import. | Is much more generall, then these lines import. |
King John | KJ IV.iii.18 | Tomorrow morning let us meet him then. | To morrow morning let vs meete him then. |
King John | KJ IV.iii.19 | Or rather then set forward; for 'twill be | Or rather then set forward, for 'twill be |
King John | KJ IV.iii.122 | Thou art more deep damned than Prince Lucifer; | Thou art more deepe damn'd then Prince Lucifer: |
King John | KJ V.i.14 | Then pause not, for the present time's so sick, | Then pause not: for the present time's so sicke, |
King John | KJ V.i.78 | Away, then, with good courage! Yet, I know, | Away then with good courage: yet I know |
King John | KJ V.ii.52 | Than had I seen the vaulty top of heaven | Then had I seene the vaultie top of heauen |
King John | KJ V.ii.58 | Nor met with fortune other than at feasts, | Nor met with Fortune, other then at feasts, |
King John | KJ V.ii.77 | And be no further harmful than in show. | And be no further harmefull then in shewe. |
King John | KJ V.ii.175 | Whom he hath used rather for sport than need – | Whom he hath vs'd rather for sport, then neede) |
King John | KJ V.iv.28 | Why should I then be false, since it is true | Why should I then be false, since it is true |
King John | KJ V.vi.18.2 | Brief, then; and what's the news? | Brcefe then: and what's the newes? |
King John | KJ V.vi.27 | Than if you had at leisure known of this. | Then if you had at leisure knowne of this. |
King John | KJ V.vii.12 | Than when you left him. Even now he sung. | Then when you left him; euen now he sung. |
King John | KJ V.vii.57 | And then all this thou seest is but a clod | And then all this thou seest, is but a clod, |
King John | KJ V.vii.72 | And then my soul shall wait on thee to heaven, | And then my soule shall waite on thee to heauen, |
King John | KJ V.vii.81 | It seems you know not, then, so much as we. | It seemes you know not then so much as we, |
King John | KJ V.vii.100.2 | Thither shall it then. | Thither shall it then, |
King Lear | KL I.i.2 | Albany than Cornwall. | Albany, then Cornwall. |
King Lear | KL I.i.19 | year elder than this, who yet is no dearer in my account. | yeere elder then this; who, yet is no deerer in my account, |
King Lear | KL I.i.55 | Sir, I love you more than word can wield the matter, | Sir, I loue you more then word can weild ye matter, |
King Lear | KL I.i.56 | Dearer than eyesight, space, and liberty, | Deerer then eye-sight, space, and libertie, |
King Lear | KL I.i.58 | No less than life, with grace, health, beauty, honour, | No lesse then life, with grace, health, beauty, honor: |
King Lear | KL I.i.76.2 | Then poor Cordelia! | Then poore Cordelia, |
King Lear | KL I.i.78 | More ponderous than my tongue. | More ponderous then my tongue. |
King Lear | KL I.i.82 | Than that conferred on Gonerill. – Now, our joy, | Then that conferr'd on Gonerill. Now our Ioy, |
King Lear | KL I.i.86 | A third more opulent than your sisters'? Speak! | A third, more opilent then your Sisters? speake. |
King Lear | KL I.i.108 | Let it be so! Thy truth then be thy dower! | Let it be so, thy truth then be thy dowre: |
King Lear | KL I.i.194 | I crave no more than hath your highness offered, | I craue no more then hath your Highnesse offer'd, |
King Lear | KL I.i.207 | Then leave her, sir, for, by the power that made me, | Then leaue her sir, for by the powre that made me, |
King Lear | KL I.i.212 | Than on a wretch whom Nature is ashamed | Then on a wretch whom Nature is asham'd |
King Lear | KL I.i.234 | Hadst not been born than not t' have pleased me better. | Not beene borne, then not t haue pleas'd me better. |
King Lear | KL I.i.246 | I am sorry then you have so lost a father | I am sorry then you haue so lost a Father, |
King Lear | KL I.i.295 | but rash. Then must we look from his age to receive not | but rash, then must we looke from his age, to receiue not |
King Lear | KL I.ii.13 | Than doth within a dull, stale, tired bed | Then doth within a dull stale tyred bed |
King Lear | KL I.ii.15 | Got 'tween asleep and wake? Well then, | Got 'tweene a sleepe, and wake? Well then, |
King Lear | KL I.ii.33 | No? What needed then that terrible dispatch | No? what needed then that terrible dispatch |
King Lear | KL I.ii.78 | villain! worse than brutish! Go, sirrah, seek him; I'll | Villaine; worse then brutish: Go sirrah, seeke him: Ile |
King Lear | KL I.ii.93 | without any further delay than this very evening. | without any further delay, then this very Euening. |
King Lear | KL I.iv.13 | I do profess to be no less than I seem: to serve him | I do professe to be no lesse then I seeme; to serue him |
King Lear | KL I.iv.69 | curiosity than as a very pretence and purpose of | curiositie, then as a very pretence and purpose of |
King Lear | KL I.iv.117 | Have more than thou showest, | Haue more then thou showest, |
King Lear | KL I.iv.118 | Speak less than thou knowest, | Speake lesse then thou knowest, |
King Lear | KL I.iv.119 | Lend less than thou owest, | Lend lesse then thou owest, |
King Lear | KL I.iv.120 | Ride more than thou goest, | Ride more then thou goest, |
King Lear | KL I.iv.121 | Learn more than thou trowest, | Learne more then thou trowest, |
King Lear | KL I.iv.122 | Set less than thou throwest; | Set lesse then thou throwest; |
King Lear | KL I.iv.126 | Than two tens to a score. | Then two tens to a score. |
King Lear | KL I.iv.128 | Then 'tis like the breath of an unfee'd lawyer: you | Then 'tis like the breath of an vnfeed Lawyer, you |
King Lear | KL I.iv.171 | Then they for sudden joy did weep, | then they / For sodaine ioy did weepe, |
King Lear | KL I.iv.182 | o' thing than a fool. And yet I would not be thee, nuncle. | o'thing then a foole, and yet I would not be thee Nunckle, |
King Lear | KL I.iv.189 | figure. I am better than thou art now; I am a fool; thou | figure, I am better then thou art now, I am a Foole, thou |
King Lear | KL I.iv.208 | Which else were shame, that then necessity | Which else were shame, that then necessitie |
King Lear | KL I.iv.242 | Than a graced palace. The shame itself doth speak | Then a grac'd Pallace. The shame it selfe doth speake |
King Lear | KL I.iv.243 | For instant remedy. Be then desired, | For instant remedy. Be then desir'd |
King Lear | KL I.iv.258.1 | Than the sea-monster! | Then the Sea-monster. |
King Lear | KL I.iv.285 | How sharper than a serpent's tooth it is | How sharper then a Serpents tooth it is, |
King Lear | KL I.iv.311 | You, sir, more knave than fool, after your master! | You Sir, more Knaue then Foole, after your Master. |
King Lear | KL I.iv.325.2 | Safer than trust too far. | Safer then trust too farre; |
King Lear | KL I.iv.341 | Than praised for harmful mildness. | Then prai'sd for harmefull mildnesse. |
King Lear | KL I.iv.344 | Nay then – | Nay then---- |
King Lear | KL I.v.3 | you know than comes from her demand out of the letter. | you know, then comes from her demand out of the Letter, |
King Lear | KL I.v.11 | Then I prithee be merry. Thy wit shall not go | Then I prythee be merry, thy wit shall not go |
King Lear | KL I.v.34 | seven stars are no more than seven is a pretty reason. | seuen Starres are no mo then seuen, is a pretty reason. |
King Lear | KL II.i.13 | You may do, then, in time. Fare you well, sir. | You may do then in time, / Fare you well Sir. |
King Lear | KL II.i.35.1 | Do more than this in sport. | Do more then this in sport; |
King Lear | KL II.i.97 | No marvel then though he were ill affected. | No maruaile then, though he were ill affected, |
King Lear | KL II.ii.7 | Why then, I care not for thee. | Why then I care not for thee. |
King Lear | KL II.ii.86 | Than I and such a knave. | Then I, and such a knaue. |
King Lear | KL II.ii.92 | Than stands on any shoulder that I see | Then stands on any shoulder that I see |
King Lear | KL II.ii.101 | Than twenty silly-ducking observants | Then twenty silly-ducking obseruants, |
King Lear | KL II.iv.10 | legs, then he wears wooden nether-stocks. | legs, then he weares wodden nether-stocks. |
King Lear | KL II.iv.22 | They could not, would not do't; 'tis worse than murder | They could not, would not do't: 'tis worse then murther, |
King Lear | KL II.iv.41 | Having more man than wit about me, drew. | Hauing more man then wit about me, drew; |
King Lear | KL II.iv.135.1 | Than she to scant her duty. | Then she to scant her dutie. |
King Lear | KL II.iv.145 | Better than you yourself. Therefore I pray you | Better then you your selfe: therefore I pray you, |
King Lear | KL II.iv.199 | Dismissing half your train, come then to me. | Dismissing halfe your traine, come then to me, |
King Lear | KL II.iv.240 | Why not, my lord? If then they chanced to slack ye, | Why not my Lord? / If then they chanc'd to slacke ye, |
King Lear | KL II.iv.261 | Allow not nature more than nature needs – | Allow not Nature, more then Nature needs: |
King Lear | KL III.i.45 | Than my out-wall, open this purse and take | Then my out-wall; open this Purse, and take |
King Lear | KL III.i.52 | Few words, but to effect more than all yet: | Few words, but to effect more then all yet; |
King Lear | KL III.ii.11 | than this rain-water out o' door. Good nuncle, in; ask thy | then this Rain-water out o' doore. Good Nunkle, in, aske thy |
King Lear | KL III.ii.18 | You owe me no subscription; then let fall | You owe me no subscription. Then let fall |
King Lear | KL III.ii.60.1 | More sinned against than sinning. | More sinn'd against, then sinning. |
King Lear | KL III.ii.64 | More harder than the stones whereof 'tis raised; | (More harder then the stones whereof 'tis rais'd, |
King Lear | KL III.ii.81 | When priests are more in word than matter, | When Priests are more in word, then matter; |
King Lear | KL III.ii.85 | Then shall the realm of Albion | Then shal the Realme of Albion, |
King Lear | KL III.ii.93 | Then comes the time, who lives to see't, | Then comes the time, who liues to see't, |
King Lear | KL III.iii.8 | between the Dukes; and a worse matter than that. I | betweene the Dukes, and a worsse matter then that: I |
King Lear | KL III.iii.22 | That which my father loses – no less than all. | That which my Father looses: no lesse then all, |
King Lear | KL III.iv.27 | Nay, get thee in. I'll pray and then I'll sleep. | Nay get thee in; Ile pray, and then Ile sleepe. |
King Lear | KL III.iv.98 | Thou wert better in a grave than to answer with thy | Thou wert better in a Graue, then to answere with thy |
King Lear | KL III.iv.100 | more than this? Consider him well. Thou owest the | more then this? Consider him well. Thou ow'st the |
King Lear | KL III.vi.1 | Here is better than the open air. Take it | Heere is better then the open ayre,t ake it |
King Lear | KL III.vi.75 | Then let them anatomize Regan, see what breeds | Then let them Anatomize Regan: See what breeds |
King Lear | KL III.vi.104 | But then the mind much sufferance doth o'erskip | |
King Lear | KL III.vii.74.1 | Than now to bid you hold. | Then now to bid you hold. |
King Lear | KL III.vii.78 | Nay then, come on, and take the chance of anger. | Nay then come on, and take the chance of anger. |
King Lear | KL III.vii.90 | O my follies! Then Edgar was abused. | O my Follies! then Edgar was abus'd, |
King Lear | KL IV.i.2 | Than still contemned and flattered. To be worst, | Then still contemn'd and flatter'd, to be worst: |
King Lear | KL IV.i.6 | The worst returns to laughter. Welcome, then, | The worst returnes to laughter. Welcome then, |
King Lear | KL IV.i.26.1 | I am worse than e'er I was. | I am worse then ere I was. |
King Lear | KL IV.i.34 | Came then into my mind, and yet my mind | Came then into my minde, and yet my minde |
King Lear | KL IV.i.35 | Was then scarce friends with him. I have heard more since. | Was then scarse Friends with him. / I haue heard more since: |
King Lear | KL IV.i.41 | Then prithee get thee away. If for my sake | Get thee away: If for my sake |
King Lear | KL IV.ii.8 | When I informed him, then he called me sot | When I inform'd him, then he call'd me Sot, |
King Lear | KL IV.ii.11.2 | Then shall you go no further. | Then shall you go no further. |
King Lear | KL IV.iii.12 | And now and then an ample tear trilled down | |
King Lear | KL IV.iii.15.2 | O, then it moved her? | |
King Lear | KL IV.iii.31 | And clamour moistened; then away she started | |
King Lear | KL IV.v.32 | Than for your lady's. You may gather more. | Then for your Ladies: You may gather more: |
King Lear | KL IV.vi.5 | Why then your other senses grow imperfect | Why then your other Senses grow imperfect |
King Lear | KL IV.vi.8 | In better phrase and matter than thou didst. | In better phrase, and matter then thou did'st. |
King Lear | KL IV.vi.16 | Methinks he seems no bigger than his head. | Me thinkes he seemes no bigger then his head. |
King Lear | KL IV.vi.115 | Was kinder to his father than my daughters | was kinder to his Father, / Then my Daughters |
King Lear | KL IV.vi.188 | Then kill, kill, kill, kill, kill, kill! | Then kill, kill, kill, kill, kill, kill. |
King Lear | KL IV.vi.202 | Then there's life in't. Nay, and you get it you shall | Then there's life in't. Come, and you get it, / You shall |
King Lear | KL IV.vi.265 | return the conqueror. Then am I the prisoner, and his bed | returne the Conqueror, then am I the Prisoner, and his bed, |
King Lear | KL IV.vii.12.1 | Then be't so, my good lord. | Then be't so my good Lord: |
King Lear | KL V.i.8 | Tell me but truly – but then speak the truth – | Tell me but truly, but then speake the truth, |
King Lear | KL V.i.31.2 | Let's then determine | Let's then determine |
King Lear | KL V.i.62 | Her husband being alive. Now then, we'll use | Her husband being aliue. Now then, wee'l vse |
King Lear | KL V.iii.69.1 | More than in your addition. | More then in your addition. |
King Lear | KL V.iii.96.1 | Than I have here proclaimed thee. | Then I haue heere proclaim'd thee. |
King Lear | KL V.iii.154 | Thou worse than any name, read thine own evil. | Thou worse then any name, reade thine owne euill: |
King Lear | KL V.iii.165 | I am no less in blood than thou art, Edmund; | I am no lesse in blood then thou art Edmond, |
King Lear | KL V.iii.184 | Rather than die at once – taught me to shift | Rather then die at once) taught me to shift |
King Lear | KL V.iii.208 | Shunned my abhorred society; but then finding | |
King Lear | KL V.iii.215 | Began to crack. Twice then the trumpets sounded, | |
King Lear | KL V.iii.261.1 | Why, then she lives. | Why then she liues. |
King Lear | KL V.iii.300 | Have more than merited. All friends shall taste | Haue more then merited. All Friends shall |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL I.i.3 | And then grace us in the disgrace of death; | And then grace vs in the disgrace of death: |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL I.i.42 | And then to sleep but three hours in the night, | And then to sleepe but three houres in the night, |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL I.i.54 | By yea and nay, sir, then I swore in jest. | By yea and nay sir, than I swore in iest. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL I.i.59 | Come on then, I will swear to study so, | Come on then, I will sweare to studie so, |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL I.i.91 | Than those that walk and wot not what they are. | Then those that walke and wot not what they are. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL I.i.99.2 | Something then in rhyme. | Something then in rime. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL I.i.106 | Than wish a snow in May's new-fangled shows, | Then wish a Snow in Mayes new fangled showes: |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL I.i.113 | Than for that angel knowledge you can say, | Then for that Angell knowledge you can say, |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL I.i.235 | park. Then for the place where – where, I mean, I did | Parke. Then for the place Where? where I meane I did |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL I.i.301 | Affliction may one day smile again, and till then sit | affliction may one day smile againe, and vntill then sit |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL I.ii.45 | Then I am sure you know how much the gross sum | Then I am sure you know how much the grosse summe |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL I.ii.47 | It doth amount to one more than two. | It doth amount to one more then two. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL I.ii.98 | Then if she fear or be to blame, | Then if she feare, or be to blame, |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL I.ii.114 | To be whipped – and yet a better love than | To bee whip'd: and yet a better loue then |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL I.ii.145 | I am more bound to you than your fellows, for | I am more bound to you then your fellowes, for |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL II.i.8 | Than Aquitaine, a dowry for a queen. | Then Aquitaine, a Dowrie for a Queene. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL II.i.18 | Than you much willing to be counted wise | Then you much wiling to be counted wise, |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL II.i.87 | Than seek a dispensation for his oath, | Then seeke a dispensation for his oath: |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL II.i.96 | I will be welcome, then. Conduct me thither. | I wil be welcome then, Conduct me thither. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL II.i.138 | If then the King your father will restore | If then the King your father will restore |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL II.i.149 | Than Aquitaine, so gelded as it is. | Then Aquitane, so guelded as it is. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL II.i.242 | Then was Venus like her mother, for her father is but grim. | Then was Venus like her mother, for her father is but grim. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL II.i.243.3 | What then, do you see? | What then, do you see? |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL III.i.63.2 | Thump then, and I flee. | Thump then, and I flee. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL III.i.105 | Then called you for the l'envoy. | Then cal'd you for the Lenuoy. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL III.i.107 | argument in; then the boy's fat l'envoy, the goose that | argument in: / Then the Boyes fat Lenuoy, the Goose that |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL III.i.139 | than French crown. I will never buy and sell out of | then a French-Crowne. I will neuer buy and sell out of |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL III.i.146 | Why then, three-farthing worth of silk. | O, Why then three farthings worth of Silke. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL III.i.162 | When tongues speak sweetly, then they name her name, | When tongues speak sweetly, then they name her name, |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL III.i.166 | Guerdon, O sweet guerdon! Better than | Gardon, O sweete gardon, better then |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL III.i.175 | Than whom no mortal so magnificent! | Then whom no mortall so magnificent, |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.i.7 | Then, forester, my friend, where is the bush | Then Forrester my friend, Where is the Bush |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.i.14 | What, what? First praise me, and again say no? | What, what? First praise me, & then again say no. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.i.19 | Fair payment for foul words is more than due. | Faire paiment for foule words, is more then due. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.i.25 | And shooting well is then accounted ill. | And shooting well, is then accounted ill: |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.i.28 | If wounding, then it was to show my skill, | If wounding, then it was to shew my skill, |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.i.29 | That more for praise than purpose meant to kill. | That more for praise, then purpose meant to kill. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.i.65 | thou art lovely. More fairer than fair, beautiful than | thou art louely: more fairer then faire, beautifull then |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.i.66 | beauteous, truer than truth itself, have commiseration on | beautious, truer then truth it selfe: haue comiseration on |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.i.93 | But if thou strive, poor soul, what art thou then? | But if thou striue (poore soule) what art thou then? |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.i.115.1 | Well then, I am the shooter. | Well then, I am the shooter. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.i.136 | An if my hand be out, then belike your hand is in. | And if my hand be out, then belike your hand is in. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.i.137 | Then will she get the upshoot by cleaving the pin. | Then will shee get the vpshoot by cleauing the is in. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.ii.29 | Which we of taste and feeling are – for those parts that do fructify in us more than he. | which we taste and feeling, are for those parts that doe fructifie in vs more then he. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.ii.59 | The dogs did yell; put ‘ L ’ to sore, then sorel jumps from thicket; | The Dogges did yell, put ell to Sore, then Sorell iumps from thicket: |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.ii.61 | If sore be sore, then ‘ L ’ to sore makes fifty sores o' sorel: | If Sore be sore, then ell to Sore, makes fiftie sores O sorell: |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.36 | But do not love thyself; then thou will keep | But doe not loue thy selfe, then thou wilt keepe |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.67 | Then thou, fair sun, which on my earth dost shine, | Then thou faire Sun, which on my earth doest shine, |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.69 | If broken, then, it is no fault of mine; | If broken then, it is no fault of mine: |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.89 | Ay, as some days; but then no sun must shine. | I as some daies, but then no sunne must shine. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.95 | A fever in your blood? Why, then incision | A Feuer in your bloud, why then incision |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.230 | My eyes are then no eyes, nor I Berowne. | My eyes are then no eyes, nor I Berowne. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.239 | She passes praise; then praise too short doth blot. | She passes prayse, then prayse too short doth blot. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.273 | No devil will fright thee then so much as she. | No Diuell will fright thee then so much as shee. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.278 | O, vile! Then, as she goes, what upward lies | O vile, then as she goes what vpward lyes? |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.282 | Then leave this chat, and, good Berowne, now prove | Then leaue this chat, & good Berown now proue |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.287.2 | 'Tis more than need. | O 'tis more then neede. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.288 | Have at you then, affection's men-at-arms! | Haue at you then affections men at armes, |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.293 | And abstinence engenders maladies. | And abstinence ingenders maladies. / And where that you haue vow'd to studie (Lords) / In that each of you haue forsworne his Booke. / Can you still dreame and pore, and thereon looke. / For when would you my Lord, or you, or you, / Haue found the ground of studies excellence, / Without the beauty of a womans face; / From womens eyes this doctrine I deriue, / They are the Ground, the Bookes, the Achadems, / From whence doth spring the true Promethean fire. / Why, vniuersall plodding poysons vp / The nimble spirits in the arteries, / As motion and long during action tyres / The sinnowy vigour of the trauailer. / Now for not looking on a womans face, / You haue in that forsworne the vse of eyes: / And studie too, the causer of your vow. / For where is any Author in the world, / Teaches such beauty as a womans eye: / Learning is but an adiunct to our selfe, / And where we are, our Learning likewise is. / Then when our selues we see in Ladies eyes, / With our selues. / Doe we not likewise see our learning there? |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.314 | Than are the tender horns of cockled snails. | Then are the tender hornes of Cockled Snayles. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.324 | O, then his lines would ravish savage ears | O then his lines would rauish sauage eares, |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.331 | Then fools you were these women to forswear, | Then fooles you were these women to forsweare: |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.342 | Saint Cupid, then! And, soldiers, to the field! | Saint Cupid then, and Souldiers to the field. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.351 | Then homeward every man attach the hand | Then homeward euery man attach the hand |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.i.17 | finer than the staple of his argument. I abhor such | finer then the staple of his argument. I abhor such |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.i.42 | than a flap-dragon. | then a flapdragon. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.131 | And then the King will court thee for his dear. | And then the King will court thee for his Deare: |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.136 | Come on, then, wear the favours most in sight. | Come on then, weare the fauours most in sight. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.159 | Beauties no richer than rich taffeta. | Beauties no richer then rich Taffata. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.190 | The measure then of one is easily told. | The measure then of one is easlie told. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.209 | Then in our measure vouchsafe but one change. | Then in our measure, vouchsafe but one change. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.211 | Play music then! Nay, you must do it soon. | Play musicke then: nay you must doe it soone. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.220.1 | Why take we hands then? | Why take you hands then? |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.226 | Then cannot we be bought; and so adieu – | Then cannot we be bought: and so adue, |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.229.1 | In private then. | In priuate then. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.232 | Nay then, two treys, an if you grow so nice, | Nay then two treyes, an if you grow so nice |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.253 | Then die a calf before your horns do grow. | Then die a Calfe before your horns do grow. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.255 | Bleat softly then. The butcher hears you cry. | Bleat softly then, the Butcher heares you cry. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.258 | Cutting a smaller hair than may be seen; | Cutting a smaller haire then may be seene, |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.261 | Fleeter than arrows, bullets, wind, thought, swifter things. | Fleeter then arrows, bullets wind, thoght, swifter things |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.342 | Then wish me better; I will give you leave. | Then wish me better, I wil giue you leaue. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.344 | To lead you to our court. Vouchsafe it then. | To leade you to our Court, vouchsafe it then. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.387 | There, then, that visor: that superfluous case | There, then, that vizard, that superfluous case, |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.435.2 | When you then were here, | When you then were heere, |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.437 | That more than all the world I did respect her. | That more then all the world I did respect her |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.468 | The ladies did change favours, and then we, | The Ladies did change Fauours; and then we |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.511 | To have one show worse than the King's and his company. | to haue one shew worse then the Kings and his companie. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.677 | Then shall Hector be whipped for Jaquenetta | Then shall Hector be whipt for Iaquenetta |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.682 | Greater than ‘ Great ’! Great, great, great | Greater then great, great, great, great |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.689 | than will sup a flea. | then will sup a Flea. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.777 | But more devout than this in our respects | But more deuout then these are our respects |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.780 | Our letters, madam, showed much more than jest. | Our letters Madam, shew'd much more then iest. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.799 | Then, at the expiration of the year, | Then at the expiration of the yeare, |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.808 | If this, or more than this, I would deny, | If this, or more then this, I would denie, |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.811 | | Hence euer then, my heart is in thy brest. / Ber. And what to me my Loue? and what to me? / Ros. You must be purged too, your sins are rack'd. / You are attaint with faults and periurie: / Therefore if you my fauor meane to get, / A tweluemonth shall you spend, and neuer rest, / But seeke the wearie beds of people sicke. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.819 | Then, if I have much love, I'll give you some. | Then if I haue much loue, Ile giue you some. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.820 | I'll serve thee true and faithfully till then. | Ile serue thee true and faithfully till then. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.852 | Of him that makes it. Then, if sickly ears, | Of him that makes it: then, if sickly eares, |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.854 | Will hear your idle scorns, continue then, | Will heare your idle scornes; continue then, |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.867.1 | And then 'twill end. | And then 'twil end. |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.887 | The cuckoo then, on every tree, | The Cuckow then on euerie tree, |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.896 | The cuckoo then, on every tree, | The Cuckow then on euerie tree |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.906 | Then nightly sings the staring owl: | Then nightly sings the staring Owle |
Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.915 | Then nightly sings the staring owl: | Then nightly sings the staring Owle, |
Macbeth | Mac I.iii.59 | Speak then to me who neither beg nor fear | Speake then to me, who neyther begge, nor feare |
Macbeth | Mac I.iii.74 | No more than to be Cawdor. Say from whence | No more then to be Cawdor. Say from whence |
Macbeth | Mac I.iii.137 | Are less than horrible imaginings. | Are lesse then horrible Imaginings: |
Macbeth | Mac I.iii.156 | Till then, enough! – Come, friends. | Till then enough: Come friends. |
Macbeth | Mac I.iv.22 | ‘ More is thy due than more than all can pay.’ | More is thy due, then more then all can pay. |
Macbeth | Mac I.v.2 | by the perfectest report they have more in them than mortal | by the perfect'st report, they haue more in them, then mortall |
Macbeth | Mac I.v.23 | Than wishest should be undone. Hie thee hither | Then wishest should be vndone. High thee hither, |
Macbeth | Mac I.v.35.1 | Than would make up his message. | Then would make vp his Message. |
Macbeth | Mac I.v.53 | Greater than both by the all-hail hereafter! | Greater then both, by the all-haile hereafter, |
Macbeth | Mac I.vi.15 | In every point twice done and then done double | In euery point twice done, and then done double, |
Macbeth | Mac I.vii.1.2 | with dishes and service over the stage. Then enter | with Dishes and Seruice ouer the Stage. Then enter |
Macbeth | Mac I.vii.1 | If it were done when 'tis done, then 'twere well | If it were done, when 'tis done, then 'twer well, |
Macbeth | Mac I.vii.14 | Strong both against the deed; then, as his host, | Strong both against the Deed: Then, as his Host, |
Macbeth | Mac I.vii.47.2 | What beast was't then | What Beast was't then |
Macbeth | Mac I.vii.49 | When you durst do it, then you were a man; | When you durst do it, then you were a man: |
Macbeth | Mac I.vii.50 | And to be more than what you were, you would | And to be more then what you were, you would |
Macbeth | Mac I.vii.52 | Did then adhere, and yet you would make both. | Did then adhere, and yet you would make both: |
Macbeth | Mac II.ii.68 | How easy is it then! Your constancy | How easie is it then? your Constancie |
Macbeth | Mac II.iii.70.1 | See, and then speak yourselves. | See, and then speake your selues:, |
Macbeth | Mac II.iv.22 | Is't known who did this more than bloody deed? | Is't known who did this more then bloody deed? |
Macbeth | Mac II.iv.29 | Thine own life's means! – Then 'tis most like | Thine owne liues meanes: Then 'tis most like, |
Macbeth | Mac II.iv.38 | Lest our old robes sit easier than our new. | Least our old Robes sit easier then our new. |
Macbeth | Mac III.i.44.1 | While then, God be with you! | While then, God be with you. |
Macbeth | Mac III.i.58 | And bade them speak to him. Then prophet-like, | And bad them speake to him. Then Prophet-like, |
Macbeth | Mac III.i.70 | Rather than so, come fate into the list | Rather then so, come Fate into the Lyst, |
Macbeth | Mac III.i.74.2 | Well then now, | Well then, Now |
Macbeth | Mac III.i.136 | Than is his father's, must embrace the fate | Then is his Fathers, must embrace the fate |
Macbeth | Mac III.ii.7 | Than by destruction dwell in doubtful joy. | Then by destruction dwell in doubtfull ioy. |
Macbeth | Mac III.ii.21 | Than on the torture of the mind to lie | Then on the torture of the Minde to lye |
Macbeth | Mac III.ii.40 | Then be thou jocund. Ere the bat hath flown | Then be thou iocund: ere the Bat hath flowne |
Macbeth | Mac III.iii.4.2 | Then stand with us; | Then stand with vs: |
Macbeth | Mac III.iii.9.2 | Then 'tis he. | Then 'tis hee: |
Macbeth | Mac III.iv.13.2 | 'Tis Banquo's then. | 'Tis Banquo's then. |
Macbeth | Mac III.iv.14 | 'Tis better thee without than he within. | 'Tis better thee without, then he within. |
Macbeth | Mac III.iv.20 | Then comes my fit again. I had else been perfect, | Then comes my Fit againe: I had else beene perfect; |
Macbeth | Mac III.iv.42.1 | Than pity for mischance. | Then pitty for Mischance. |
Macbeth | Mac III.iv.82.1 | Than such a murder is. | Then such a murther is. |
Macbeth | Mac III.iv.87 | Then I'll sit down. Give me some wine; fill full! | Then Ile sit downe: Giue me some Wine, fill full: |
Macbeth | Mac III.iv.104 | If trembling I inhabit then, protest me | If trembling I inhabit then, protest mee |
Macbeth | Mac IV.i.38 | Then the charm is firm and good. | Then the Charme is firme and good. |
Macbeth | Mac IV.i.75 | More potent than the first. | More potent then the first. |
Macbeth | Mac IV.i.81 | Then live Macduff; what need I fear of thee? | Then liue Macduffe: what need I feare of thee? |
Macbeth | Mac IV.ii.42 | Then you'll buy 'em to sell again. | Then you'l by 'em to sell againe. |
Macbeth | Mac IV.ii.56 | Then the liars and swearers are fools; for there are | Then the Liars and Swearers are Fools: for there are |
Macbeth | Mac IV.ii.77 | Accounted dangerous folly. Why then, alas, | Accounted dangerous folly. Why then (alas) |
Macbeth | Mac IV.iii.47 | Shall have more vices than it had before, | Shall haue more vices then it had before, |
Macbeth | Mac IV.iii.48 | More suffer, and more sundry ways, than ever, | More suffer, and more sundry wayes then euer, |
Macbeth | Mac IV.iii.66.1 | Than such a one to reign. | Then such an one to reigne. |
Macbeth | Mac IV.iii.86 | Than summer-seeming lust; and it hath been | Then Summer-seeming Lust: and it hath bin |
Macbeth | Mac IV.iii.110 | Oftener upon her knees than on her feet, | Oftner vpon her knees, then on her feet, |
Macbeth | Mac IV.iii.130 | No less in truth than life. My first false speaking | No lesse in truth then life. My first false speaking |
Macbeth | Mac V.i.35 | then, 'tis time to do't. – Hell is murky! – Fie, my lord, | then 'tis time to doo't: Hell is murky. Fye, my Lord, |
Macbeth | Mac V.i.70 | More needs she the divine than the physician. | More needs she the Diuine, then the Physitian: |
Macbeth | Mac V.ii.22.2 | Who then shall blame | Who then shall blame |
Macbeth | Mac V.iii.7 | Shall e'er have power upon thee.’ Then fly, false thanes, | Shall ere haue power vpon thee. Then fly false Thanes, |
Macbeth | Mac V.v.26 | And then is heard no more. It is a tale | And then is heard no more. It is a Tale |
Macbeth | Mac V.vi.17.1 | Than any is in hell. | Then any is in hell. |
Macbeth | Mac V.vi.47.1 | Than terms can give thee out. | Then tearmes can giue thee out. |
Macbeth | Mac V.vi.62 | Then yield thee, coward; | Then yeeld thee Coward, |
Macbeth | Mac V.vi.82.2 | Then he is dead? | Then he is dead? |
Macbeth | Mac V.vi.84 | Must not be measured by his worth, for then | Must not be measur'd by his worth, for then |
Macbeth | Mac V.vi.86.2 | Why then, God's soldier be he. | Why then, Gods Soldier be he: |
Measure for Measure | MM I.i.7 | My strength can give you. Then no more remains | My strength can giue you: Then no more remaines |
Measure for Measure | MM I.ii.2 | composition with the King of Hungary, why then all the | composition with the King of Hungary, why then all the |
Measure for Measure | MM I.iii.5 | More grave and wrinkled than the aims and ends | More graue, and wrinkled, then the aimes, and ends |
Measure for Measure | MM I.iii.7 | My holy sir, none better knows than you | My holy Sir, none better knowes then you |
Measure for Measure | MM I.iii.27 | Becomes more mocked than feared, so our decrees, | More mock'd, then fear'd: so our Decrees, |
Measure for Measure | MM I.iii.34.1 | Than in Lord Angelo. | Then in Lord Angelo. |
Measure for Measure | MM I.iii.53 | Is more to bread than stone. Hence shall we see, | Is more to bread then stone: hence shall we see |
Measure for Measure | MM I.iv.12 | Then, if you speak, you must not show your face, | Then if you speake, you must not show your face; |
Measure for Measure | MM II.i.6 | Than fall, and bruise to death. Alas, this gentleman, | Then fall, and bruise to death: alas, this gentleman |
Measure for Measure | MM II.i.21 | Guiltier than him they try; what's open made to justice, | Guiltier then him they try; what's open made to Iustice, |
Measure for Measure | MM II.i.102 | Very well: you being then, if you be remembered, | Very well: you being then (if you be remembred) |
Measure for Measure | MM II.i.105 | Why, very well: I telling you then, if you be | Why, very well: I telling you then (if you be |
Measure for Measure | MM II.i.110 | Why, very well then – | Why very well then. |
Measure for Measure | MM II.i.127 | Why, very well then. I hope here be truths. | Why very well then: I hope here be truthes. |
Measure for Measure | MM II.i.149 | worst thing about him. Good, then; if his face be the | worst thing about him: good then: if his face be the |
Measure for Measure | MM II.i.158 | person than any of us all. | person then any of vs all. |
Measure for Measure | MM II.i.191 | Hath she had any more than one husband? | Hath she had any more then one husband? |
Measure for Measure | MM II.i.196 | hang then. Get you gone, and let me hear no more of | hang them: get you gon, and let me heare no more of |
Measure for Measure | MM II.i.223 | then. If your worship will take order for the drabs and | then: if your worship will take order for the drabs and |
Measure for Measure | MM II.ii.42 | I had a brother then; heaven keep your honour. | I had a brother then; heauen keepe your honour. |
Measure for Measure | MM II.ii.68 | And you were Isabel; should it then be thus? | And you were Isabell: should it then be thus? |
Measure for Measure | MM II.ii.78 | And mercy then will breathe within your lips, | And mercie then will breathe within your lips |
Measure for Measure | MM II.ii.86 | With less respect than we do minister | With lesse respect then we doe minister |
Measure for Measure | MM II.ii.101 | For then I pity those I do not know, | For then I pittie those I doe not know, |
Measure for Measure | MM II.ii.117 | Than the soft myrtle; but man, proud man, | Then the soft Mertill: But man, proud man, |
Measure for Measure | MM II.ii.170 | Than woman's lightness? Having waste ground enough, | Then womans lightnesse? hauing waste ground enough, |
Measure for Measure | MM II.iii.9 | I would do more than that, if more were needful. | I would do more then that, if more were needfull |
Measure for Measure | MM II.iii.15 | Than die for this. | Then dye for this. |
Measure for Measure | MM II.iii.26 | So then it seems your most offenceful act | So then it seemes your most offence full act |
Measure for Measure | MM II.iii.28 | Then was your sin of heavier kind than his. | Then was your sin of heauier kinde then his. |
Measure for Measure | MM II.iv.33 | Than to demand what 'tis. Your brother cannot live. | Then to demand what 'tis: your Brother cannot liue. |
Measure for Measure | MM II.iv.51 | Say you so? Then I shall pose you quickly. | Say you so: then I shall poze you quickly. |
Measure for Measure | MM II.iv.56 | I had rather give my body than my soul. | I had rather giue my body, then my soule. |
Measure for Measure | MM II.iv.58.1 | Stand more for number than accompt. | Stand more for number, then for accompt. |
Measure for Measure | MM II.iv.81 | Than beauty could, displayed. But mark me; | Then beauty could displaied: But marke me, |
Measure for Measure | MM II.iv.104.2 | Then must your brother die. | Then must your brother die. |
Measure for Measure | MM II.iv.107 | Than that a sister, by redeeming him, | Then that a sister, by redeeming him |
Measure for Measure | MM II.iv.109 | Were not you then as cruel as the sentence | Were not you then as cruell as the Sentence, |
Measure for Measure | MM II.iv.116 | A merriment than a vice. | A merriment, then a vice. |
Measure for Measure | MM II.iv.133 | Than faults may shake our frames – let me be bold. | Then faults may shake our frames) let me be bold; |
Measure for Measure | MM II.iv.146 | Which seems a little fouler than it is, | Which seemes a little fouler then it is, |
Measure for Measure | MM II.iv.184 | Then, Isabel, live chaste, and, brother, die. | Then Isabell liue chaste, and brother die; |
Measure for Measure | MM II.iv.185 | More than our brother is our chastity. | "More then our Brother, is our Chastitie. |
Measure for Measure | MM III.i.1 | So then you hope of pardon from Lord Angelo? | So then you hope of pardon from Lord Angelo? |
Measure for Measure | MM III.i.80 | Than a perpetual honour. Dar'st thou die? | Then a perpetuall Honor. Dar'st thou die? |
Measure for Measure | MM III.i.129 | The pendent world; or to be worse than worst | The pendant world: or to be worse then worst |
Measure for Measure | MM III.i.192 | brother die by the law than my son should be unlawfully | brother die by the Law, then my sonne should be vnlawfullie |
Measure for Measure | MM III.ii.9 | being richer than innocency, stands for the facing. | being richer then Innocency, stands for the facing. |
Measure for Measure | MM III.ii.63 | Well, then, imprison him. If imprisonment be the | Well, then imprison him: If imprisonment be the |
Measure for Measure | MM III.ii.77 | You will not bail me then, sir? | You will not baile me then Sir? |
Measure for Measure | MM III.ii.78 | Then, Pompey, nor now. What news abroad, | Then Pompey, nor now: what newes abroad |
Measure for Measure | MM III.ii.101 | How should he be made, then? | How should he be made then? |
Measure for Measure | MM III.ii.225 | Rather rejoicing to see another merry than | Rather reioycing to see another merry, then |
Measure for Measure | MM III.ii.254 | Than by self-offences weighing. | Then by selfe-offences weighing. |
Measure for Measure | MM IV.i.54 | Take then this your companion by the hand, | Take then this your companion by the hand |
Measure for Measure | MM IV.ii.47 | is a more penitent trade than your bawd. He doth | is a more penitent Trade then your Bawd: he doth |
Measure for Measure | MM IV.ii.73.3 | They will then, ere't be long. | They will then er't be long. |
Measure for Measure | MM IV.ii.81 | Which he corrects, then were he tyrannous, | Which he corrects, then were he tirrannous, |
Measure for Measure | MM IV.ii.122 | than we must yet deliver. Thus fail not to do your office, | then we must yet deliuer. Thus faile not to doe your Office, |
Measure for Measure | MM IV.ii.155 | to the law than Angelo who hath sentenced him. To make | to the Law, then Angelo who hath sentenc'd him. To make |
Measure for Measure | MM IV.ii.174 | upon this, more than thanks and good fortune, by the | vpon this, more then thankes and good fortune, by the |
Measure for Measure | MM IV.ii.184 | persuasion can with ease attempt you, I will go further than | perswasion, can with ease attempt you, I wil go further then |
Measure for Measure | MM IV.iii.7 | ready money. Marry, then ginger was not much in request, | readie money: marrie then, Ginger was not much in request, |
Measure for Measure | MM IV.iii.8 | for the old women were all dead. Then is there | for the olde Women were all dead. Then is there |
Measure for Measure | MM IV.iii.11 | which now peaches him a beggar. Then have we here | which now peaches him a beggar. Then haue we heere, |
Measure for Measure | MM IV.iii.136 | This letter then to Friar Peter give. | This Letter then to Friar Peter giue, |
Measure for Measure | MM IV.iii.160 | He's a better woodman than thou tak'st him for. | he's a better woodman then thou tak'st him for. |
Measure for Measure | MM IV.iii.171 | Sir, your company is fairer than honest. Rest you | Sir your company is fairer then honest, rest you |
Measure for Measure | MM IV.iv.12 | which shall then have no power to stand against us. | which shall then haue no power to stand against vs. |
Measure for Measure | MM V.i.44 | Than this is all as true as it is strange. | Then this is all as true, as it is strange; |
Measure for Measure | MM V.i.49 | There is another comfort than this world, | There is another comfort, then this world, |
Measure for Measure | MM V.i.74.1 | As then the messenger – | As then the Messenger. |
Measure for Measure | MM V.i.79.2 | I wish you now, then. | I wish you now then, |
Measure for Measure | MM V.i.81 | A business for yourself, pray heaven you then | A businesse for your selfe: pray heauen you then |
Measure for Measure | MM V.i.115 | Then, O you blessed ministers above, | Then oh you blessed Ministers aboue |
Measure for Measure | MM V.i.175 | A widow, then? | A Widow then? |
Measure for Measure | MM V.i.177 | Why, you are nothing then. Neither maid, widow, | Why you are nothing then: neither Maid, Widow, |
Measure for Measure | MM V.i.188 | He was drunk, then, my lord. It can be no better. | He was drunk then, my Lord, it can be no better. |
Measure for Measure | MM V.i.198.1 | Charges she more than me? | Charges she moe then me? |
Measure for Measure | MM V.i.272 | Not better than he, by her own report. | Not better then he, by her owne report. |
Measure for Measure | MM V.i.298 | Then is your cause gone too. The Duke's unjust, | Then is your cause gone too: The Duke's vniust, |
Measure for Measure | MM V.i.307 | To call him villain? And then to glance from him | To call him villaine; and then to glance from him, |
Measure for Measure | MM V.i.312 | Dare no more stretch this finger of mine than he | No more stretch this finger of mine, then he |
Measure for Measure | MM V.i.332 | fool, and a coward, as you then reported him to be? | foole, and a coward, as you then reported him to be? |
Measure for Measure | MM V.i.357 | This may prove worse than hanging. | This may proue worse then hanging. |
Measure for Measure | MM V.i.364 | I should be guiltier than my guiltiness | I should be guiltier then my guiltinesse, |
Measure for Measure | MM V.i.367 | Hath looked upon my passes. Then, good prince, | Hath look'd vpon my passes. Then good Prince, |
Measure for Measure | MM V.i.370 | Immediate sentence, then, and sequent death | Immediate sentence then, and sequent death, |
Measure for Measure | MM V.i.378.1 | Than at the strangeness of it. | Then at the strangenesse of it. |
Measure for Measure | MM V.i.379 | Your friar is now your prince. As I was then | Your Frier is now your Prince: As I was then |
Measure for Measure | MM V.i.390 | Than let him so be lost. O most kind maid, | Then let him so be lost: oh most kinde Maid, |
Measure for Measure | MM V.i.395 | Than that which lives to fear. Make it your comfort, | Then that which liues to feare: make it your comfort, |
Measure for Measure | MM V.i.409 | Then, Angelo, thy faults thus manifested, | Then Angelo, thy fault's thus manifested; |
Measure for Measure | MM V.i.473 | That I crave death more willingly than mercy. | That I craue death more willingly then mercy, |
Measure for Measure | MM V.i.478 | That apprehends no further than this world, | That apprehends no further then this world, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV I.i.28 | Vailing her high-top lower than her ribs | Vailing her high top lower then her ribs |
The Merchant of Venice | MV I.i.46.1 | Why then you are in love. | Why then you are in loue. |
The Merchant of Venice | MV I.i.47 | Not in love neither? Then let us say you are sad | Not in loue neither: then let vs say you are sad |
The Merchant of Venice | MV I.i.82 | Than my heart cool with mortifying groans. | Then my heart coole with mortifying grones. |
The Merchant of Venice | MV I.i.105 | Well, we will leave you then till dinner-time. | Well, we will leaue you then till dinner time. |
The Merchant of Venice | MV I.i.115 | more than any man in all Venice. His reasons are as two | more then any man in all Venice, his reasons are two |
The Merchant of Venice | MV I.i.125 | Than my faint means would grant continuance. | Then my faint meanes would grant continuance: |
The Merchant of Venice | MV I.i.157 | Than if you had made waste of all I have. | Then if you had made waste of all I haue: |
The Merchant of Venice | MV I.i.158 | Then do but say to me what I should do | Then doe but say to me what I should doe |
The Merchant of Venice | MV I.i.162 | And she is fair, and, fairer than that word, | And she is faire, and fairer then that word, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV I.ii.16 | good to be done than be one of the twenty to follow | good to be done, then be one of the twentie to follow |
The Merchant of Venice | MV I.ii.43 | Then there is the County Palatine. | Than is there the Countie Palentine. |
The Merchant of Venice | MV I.ii.49 | with a bone in his mouth than to either of these. | with a bone in his mouth, then to either of these: |
The Merchant of Venice | MV I.ii.55 | why he hath a horse better than the Neapolitan's, a better | why he hath a horse better then the Neopolitans, a better |
The Merchant of Venice | MV I.ii.56 | bad habit of frowning than the Count Palatine; he is | bad habite of frowning then the Count Palentine, he is |
The Merchant of Venice | MV I.ii.62 | What say you then to Falconbridge, the young | What say you then to Fauconbridge, the yong |
The Merchant of Venice | MV I.ii.83 | is best he is a little worse than a man, and when he is | is best, he is a little worse then a man, and when he is |
The Merchant of Venice | MV I.ii.84 | worst he is little better than a beast. An the worst fall | worst, he is little better then a beast: and the worst fall |
The Merchant of Venice | MV I.ii.98 | by some other sort than your father's imposition, | by some other sort then your Fathers imposition, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV I.ii.125 | shrive me than wive me. Come, Nerissa. Sirrah, go | shriue me then wiue me. Come Nerrissa, sirra go |
The Merchant of Venice | MV I.iii.23 | thieves and land thieves, I mean pirates; and then there | theeues, and land theeues, I meane Pyrats, and then there |
The Merchant of Venice | MV I.iii.65 | Well then, your bond. And let me see; but hear you, | Well then, your bond: and let me see, but heare you, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV I.iii.84 | Who then conceiving, did in eaning time | Who then conceauing, did in eaning time |
The Merchant of Venice | MV I.iii.101 | Three months from twelve, then, let me see, the rate – | Three months from twelue, then let me see the rate. |
The Merchant of Venice | MV I.iii.111 | Well then, it now appears you need my help. | Well then, it now appeares you neede my helpe: |
The Merchant of Venice | MV I.iii.112 | Go to then. You come to me and you say, | Goe to then, you come to me, and you say, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV I.iii.169 | Then meet me forthwith at the notary's; | Then meete me forthwith at the Notaries, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV II.i.20 | Yourself, renowned Prince, then stood as fair | Your selfe (renowned Prince) than stood as faire |
The Merchant of Venice | MV II.i.45.2 | Good fortune then, | Good fortune then, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV II.ii.32 | father who, being more than sand-blind, high-gravel-blind, | Father, who being more then sand-blinde, high grauel blinde, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV II.ii.87 | Thou hast got more hair on thy chin than Dobbin my | thou hast got more haire on thy chin, then Dobbin my |
The Merchant of Venice | MV II.ii.89 | It should seem then that Dobbin's tail grows | It should seeme then that Dobbins taile growes |
The Merchant of Venice | MV II.ii.91 | have on my face when I last saw him. | taile then I haue of my face when I lost saw him. |
The Merchant of Venice | MV II.ii.144 | More guarded than his fellows'. See it done. | More garded then his fellowes: see it done. |
The Merchant of Venice | MV II.ii.151 | maids is a simple coming-in for one man. And then to | maides is a simple comming in for one man, and then to |
The Merchant of Venice | MV II.ii.167 | Why then you must. But hear thee, Gratiano: | Why then you must: but heare thee Gratiano, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV II.ii.178 | Talk with respect, and swear but now and then, | Talke with respect, and sweare but now and than, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV II.iv.13 | And whiter than the paper it writ on | And whiter then the paper it writ on, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV II.v.23 | say you shall see a masque, but if you do, then it was not | you shall see a Maske, but if you doe, then it was not |
The Merchant of Venice | MV II.v.30 | Clamber not you up to the casements then, | Clamber not you vp to the casements then, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV II.v.46 | More than the wild-cat. Drones hive not with me; | More then the wilde-cat: drones hiue not with me, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV II.vi.6 | To seal love's bonds new-made than they are wont | To steale loues bonds new made, then they are wont |
The Merchant of Venice | MV II.vi.13 | Are with more spirit chased than enjoyed. | Are with more spirit chased then enioy'd. |
The Merchant of Venice | MV II.vi.24 | I'll watch as long for you then. Approach. | Ile watch as long for you then: approach |
The Merchant of Venice | MV II.vi.68 | Than to be under sail and gone tonight. | Then to be vnder saile, and gone to night. |
The Merchant of Venice | MV II.vii.12 | If you choose that, then I am yours withal. | If you choose that, then I am yours withall. |
The Merchant of Venice | MV II.vii.21 | I'll then nor give nor hazard aught for lead. | Ile then nor giue nor hazard ought for lead. |
The Merchant of Venice | MV II.vii.34 | But more than these, in love I do deserve. | But more then these, in loue I doe deserue. |
The Merchant of Venice | MV II.vii.55 | Was set in worse than gold. They have in England | Was set in worse then gold! They haue in England |
The Merchant of Venice | MV II.vii.62.1 | Then I am yours. | Then I am yours. |
The Merchant of Venice | MV II.vii.75 | Then farewell heat, and welcome frost. | Then farewell heate, and welcome frost: |
The Merchant of Venice | MV II.ix.27 | Not learning more than the fond eye doth teach, | Not learning more then the fond eye doth teach, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV II.ix.34 | Why then, to thee, thou silver treasure house. | Why then to thee thou Siluer treasure house, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV II.ix.44 | How many then should cover that stand bare, | How many then should couer that stand bare? |
The Merchant of Venice | MV II.ix.46 | How much low peasantry would then be gleaned | How much low pleasantry would then be gleaned |
The Merchant of Venice | MV II.ix.59 | Did I deserve no more than a fool's head? | Did I deserue no more then a fooles head, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.i.27 | fledged, and then it is the complexion of them all to | fledg'd, and then it is the complexion of them al to |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.i.36 | hers than between jet and ivory, more between your | hers, then betweene Iet and Iuorie, more betweene your |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.i.37 | bloods than there is between red wine and Rhenish. But | bloods, then there is betweene red wine and rennish: but |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.11 | How to choose right, but then I am forsworn. | How to choose right, but then I am forsworne, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.17 | Mine own I would say; but if mine then yours, | Mine owne I would say: but of mine then yours, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.26 | Upon the rack, Bassanio? Then confess | Vpon the racke Bassanio, then confesse |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.35.1 | Well then, confess and live. | Well then, confesse and liue. |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.40 | Away then, I am locked in one of them; | Away then, I am lockt in one of them, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.44 | Then if he lose he makes a swanlike end, | Then if he loose he makes a Swan-like end, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.48 | And what is music then? Then music is | And what is musique than? Than musique is |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.55 | Than young Alcides when he did redeem | Then yong Alcides, when he did redeeme |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.62 | I view the fight than thou that mak'st the fray. | I view the sight, then thou that mak'st the fray. |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.101 | To entrap the wisest. Therefore thou gaudy gold, | To intrap the wisest. Therefore then thou gaudie gold, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.105 | Which rather threaten'st than dost promise aught, | Which rather threatnest then dost promise ought, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.106 | Thy paleness moves me more than eloquence, | Thy palenesse moues me more then eloquence, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.123 | Faster than gnats in cobwebs. But her eyes, | Faster then gnats in cobwebs: but her eies, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.161 | But she may learn; happier than this, | But she may learne: happier then this, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.184 | Parts from this finger, then parts life from hence, | Parts from this finger, then parts life from hence, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.185 | O then be bold to say Bassanio's dead. | O then be bold to say Bassanio's dead. |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.200 | No more pertains to me, my lord, than you. | No more pertaines to me my Lord then you; |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.256 | And then I told you true; and yet, dear lady, | And then I told you true: and yet deere Ladie, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.259 | My state was nothing, I should then have told you | My state was nothing, I should then haue told you |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.260 | That I was worse than nothing; for indeed | That I was worse then nothing: for indeede |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.287 | Than twenty times the value of the sum | Then twenty times the value of the summe |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.296 | Than any that draws breath in Italy. | Then any that drawes breath in Italie. |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.300 | Double six thousand and then treble that, | Double sixe thousand, and then treble that, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.304 | And then away to Venice to your friend! | And then away to Venice to your friend: |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.iii.36 | To see me pay his debt, and then I care not. | To see me pay his debt, and then I care not. |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.iv.9 | Than customary bounty can enforce you. | Then customary bounty can enforce you. |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.iv.72 | I could not do withal. Then I'll repent, | I could not doe withall: then Ile repent, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.v.13 | Truly then, I fear you are damned both by | Truly then I feare you are damned both by |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.v.38 | than reason; but if she be less than an honest woman, | then reason: but if she be lesse then an honest woman, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.v.39 | she is indeed more than I took her for. | shee is indeed more then I tooke her for. |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.v.46 | Then bid them prepare dinner. | then bid them prepare dinner. |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.v.49 | Will you cover then, sir? | Will you couer than sir? |
The Merchant of Venice | MV III.v.84 | Then, howsome'er thou speak'st, 'mong other things | Then how som ere thou speakst 'mong other things, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.19 | To the last hour of act, and then 'tis thought | To the last houre of act, and then 'tis thought |
The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.41 | A weight of carrion flesh than to receive | A weight of carrion flesh, then to receiue |
The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.60 | More than a lodged hate and a certain loathing | More then a lodg'd hate, and a certaine loathing |
The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.79 | As seek to soften that – than which what's harder? – | As seeke to soften that, then which what harder? |
The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.118 | Than to live still, and write mine epitaph. | Then to liue still, and write mine Epitaph. |
The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.179.2 | Then must the Jew be merciful. | Then must the Iew be mercifull. |
The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.186 | The throned monarch better than his crown. | The throned Monarch better then his Crowne. |
The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.193 | And earthly power doth then show likest God's | And earthly power doth then shew likest Gods |
The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.241.2 | Why then, thus it is: | Why then thus it is: |
The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.248 | How much more elder art thou than thy looks! | How much more elder art thou then thy lookes? |
The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.265 | Than is her custom; it is still her use | Then is her custome. It is still her vse |
The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.294 | Had been her husband, rather than a Christian. | Had beene her husband, rather then a Christian. |
The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.305 | Take then thy bond, take thou thy pound of flesh, | Then take thy bond, take thou thy pound of flesh, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.313 | Thou shalt have justice more than thou desir'st. | Thou shalt haue iustice more then thou desirest. |
The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.315 | I take this offer then. Pay the bond thrice | I take this offer then, pay the bond thrice, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.324 | Or less than a just pound, be it but so much | Or lesse then a iust pound, be it so much |
The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.342 | Why, then the devil give him good of it! | Why then the Deuill giue him good of it: |
The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.431 | There's more depends on this than on the value. | There's more depends on this then on the valew, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV V.i.95 | Until a king be by, and then his state | Vntill a King be by, and then his state |
The Merchant of Venice | MV V.i.100 | Methinks it sounds much sweeter than by day. | Methinkes it sounds much sweeter then by day? |
The Merchant of Venice | MV V.i.106 | No better a musician than the wren. | No better a Musitian then the Wren? |
The Merchant of Venice | MV V.i.138 | No more than I am well acquitted of. | No more then I am wel acquitted of. |
The Merchant of Venice | MV V.i.140 | It must appear in other ways than words, | It must appeare in other waies then words, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV V.i.163 | No higher than thyself, the judge's clerk, | No higher then thy selfe, the Iudges Clearke, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV V.i.181 | Deserved it too; and then the boy, his clerk | Deseru'd it too: and then the Boy his Clearke |
The Merchant of Venice | MV V.i.202 | You would not then have parted with the ring. | You would not then haue parted with the Ring: |
The Merchant of Venice | MV V.i.236 | Well, do you so. Let not me take him then! | Well, doe you so: let not me take him then, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV V.i.254 | Then you shall be his surety. Give him this, | Then you shall be his suretie: giue him this, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV V.i.255 | And bid him keep it better than the other. | And bid him keepe it better then the other. |
The Merchant of Venice | MV V.i.275 | Than you expect. Unseal this letter soon, | Then you expect: vnseale this letter soone, |
The Merchant of Venice | MV V.i.285 | When I am absent, then lie with my wife. | When I am absent, then lie with my wife. |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW I.i.153 | By these gloves, then 'twas he. | By these gloues, then 'twas he. |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW I.i.157 | By this hat, then he in the red face had it. For | By this hat, then he in the red face had it: for |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW I.i.166 | Ay, you spake in Latin then too. But 'tis no | I, you spake in Latten then to: but 'tis no |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW I.i.183 | I had rather than forty shillings I had my Book | I had rather then forty shillings I had my booke |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW I.i.224 | I will do a greater thing than that, upon your | I will doe a greater thing then that, vpon your |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW I.i.292 | I'll rather be unmannerly than troublesome. | Ile rather be vnmannerly, then troublesome: |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW I.iii.29 | Why then, let kibes ensue. | Why then let Kibes ensue. |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW I.iii.58 | Then did the sun on dunghill shine. | Then did the Sun on dung-hill shine. |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW I.iii.71 | And by my side wear steel? Then Lucifer take all! | And by my side weare Steele? then Lucifer take all. |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW I.iv.125 | woman in Windsor knows more of Anne's mind than | woman in Windsor knowes more of Ans minde then |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW I.iv.126 | I do, nor can do more than I do with her, I thank heaven. | I doe, nor can doe more then I doe with her, I thanke heauen. |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.i.6 | You are not young, no more am I. Go to, then, | you are not yong, no more am I: goe to then, |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.i.7 | there's sympathy. You are merry, so am I. Ha, ha, then | there's simpathie: you are merry, so am I: ha, ha, then |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.i.25 | company. What should I say to him? I was then frugal | Company: what should I say to him? I was then / Frugall |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.i.37 | Well, I do then. Yet I say I could show | Well: I doe then: yet I say, I could shew |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.i.58 | place together than the Hundredth Psalm to the tune of | place together, then the hundred Psalms to the tune of |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.i.171 | what he gets more of her than sharp words, let it lie on | what hee gets more of her, then sharpe words, let it lye on |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.i.213 | Have with you. I had rather hear them scold than | Haue with you: I had rather heare them scold, then |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.ii.2 | Why then, the world's mine oyster, | Why then the world's mine Oyster, |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.ii.35 | Good maid, then. | Good maid then. |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.ii.83 | Ay, forsooth; and then you may | I, forsooth: and then you may |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.ii.114 | life than she does. Do what she will, say what she will, | life then she do's: doe what shee will, say what she will, |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.ii.120 | Nay, but do so, then – and, look | Nay, but doe so then, and looke |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.ii.135 | make more of thy old body than I have done. Will they | make more of thy olde body then I haue done: will they |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.ii.162 | better plight for a lender than you are, the which hath | better plight for a Lender, then you are: the which hath |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.ii.208 | Of what quality was your love, then? | Of what qualitie was your loue then? |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.ii.237 | commend themselves. I could drive her then from the | commend themselues, I could driue her then from the |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.ii.290 | than my wife with herself. Then she plots, then she | then my wife with her selfe. Then she plots, then shee |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.ii.291 | ruminates, then she devises. And what they think in | ruminates, then shee deuises: and what they thinke in |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.ii.296 | Page. I will about it. Better three hours too soon than a | Page. I will about it, better three houres too soone, then a |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.iii.56 | By gar, then I have as much mockvater as de | By gar, then I haue as much Mock-vater as de |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.iii.88 | Let us wag, then. | Let vs wag then. |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.ii.6 | than follow him like a dwarf. | then follow him like a dwarfe. |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.ii.36 | together. Well, I will take him, then torture my wife, | together. Well, I will take him, then torture my wife, |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.ii.43 | praised for this than mocked, for it is as positive as the | praisd for this, then mock'd, for it is as possitiue, as the |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.ii.51 | more money than I'll speak of. | more mony / Then Ile speake of. |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.iii.37 | Go to, then. We'll use this unwholesome | Go-too then: we'l vse this vnwholsome |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.iii.115 | as his peril. I had rather than a thousand pound he were | as his perill. I had rather then a thousand pound he were |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.iii.142 | without cause, why then make sport at me; then let me | without cause, / Why then make sport at me, then let me |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.iii.192 | Heaven make you better than your | Heauen make you better then your |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.iv.3.1 | Alas, how then? | Alas, how then? |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.iv.16 | Than stamps in gold or sums in sealed bags. | Then stampes in Gold, or summes in sealed bagges: |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.iv.21 | Cannot attain it, why then – hark you hither. | Cannot attaine it, why then harke you hither. |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.iv.63 | dole. They can tell you how things go better than I can. | dole, they can tell you how things go, better then I can: |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.iv.90 | Till then, farewell, sir. She must needs go in; | Till then, farewell Sir, she must needs go in, |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.v.47 | then judge of my merit. | then iudge of my merit. |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.v.102 | of a peck, hilt to point, heel to head; and then, to | of a Pecke, hilt to point, heele to head. And then to |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.v.108 | of this bath, when I was more than half stewed in | of this Bath (when I was more then halfe stew'd in |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.v.114 | you have suffered all this. My suit, then, is desperate? | you haue sufferd all this. My suite then is desperate: |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.v.122 | Is it? I will then address me to my appointment. | Is it? I will then addresse mee to my appointment: |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW IV.i.27 | than polecats, sure. | then Powlcats, sure. |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW IV.i.75 | He is a better scholar than I thought he | He is a better scholler then I thought he |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW IV.ii.39 | Why, then, you are utterly shamed, and | Why then you are vtterly sham'd, & |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW IV.ii.41 | with him, away with him! Better shame than murder. | with him, away with him: Better shame, then murther. |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW IV.ii.61 | I'll go out, then. | Ile go out then. |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW IV.ii.69 | rather than a mischief. | rather then a mischiefe. |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW IV.ii.109 | way then to unfool me again? Set down the basket, | way then to vnfoole me againe. Set downe the basket |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW IV.ii.210 | Come, to the forge with it, then. Shape | Come, to the Forge with it, then |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW IV.iv.7 | Than thee with wantonness. Now doth thy honour stand, | Then thee with wantonnes: Now doth thy honor stand |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW IV.iv.16 | There is no better way than that they spoke of. | There is no better way then that they spoke of. |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW IV.iv.55 | Then let them all encircle him about, | Then let them all encircle him about, |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW IV.v.56 | taught me more wit than ever I learned before in my | taught me more wit, then euer I learn'd before in my |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW IV.v.99 | suffered more for their sakes, more than the villainous | suffer'd more for their sakes; more then the villanous |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW IV.vi.5 | A hundred pound in gold more than your loss. | A hundred pound in gold, more then your losse. |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW V.iii.10 | than a great deal of heartbreak. | then a great deale of heart-breake. |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW V.v.9 | beast – O Jove, a beastly fault – and then another fault | beast, (O Ioue, a beastly fault:) and then another fault, |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW V.v.68 | More fertile-fresh than all the field to see; | Mote fertile-fresh then all the Field to see: |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW V.v.108 | Become the forest better than the town? | Become the Forrest better then the Towne? |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW V.v.186 | Upon my life, then, you took the wrong. | Vpon my life then, you tooke the wrong. |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.i.9 | And then the moon – like to a silver bow | And then the Moone, like to a siluer bow, |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.i.77 | Than that which, withering on the virgin thorn, | Then that which withering on the virgin thorne, |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.i.100 | As well possessed. My love is more than his, | As well possest: my loue is more then his: |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.i.103 | And – which is more than all these boasts can be – | And (which is more then all these boasts can be) |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.i.105 | Why should not I then prosecute my right? | Why should not I then prosecute my right? |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.i.150 | If then true lovers have been ever crossed | If then true Louers haue beene euer crost, |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.i.152 | Then let us teach our trial patience, | Then let vs teach our triall patience, |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.i.163 | Cannot pursue us. If thou lovest me, then | Cannot pursue vs. If thou lou'st me, then |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.i.176 | In number more than ever women spoke, – | (In number more then euer women spoke) |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.i.184 | More tuneable than lark to shepherd's ear | More tuneable then Larke to shepheards eare, |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.i.206 | O then, what graces in my love do dwell | O then, what graces in my Loue do dwell, |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.i.247 | Then to the wood will he tomorrow night | Then to the wood will he, to morrow night |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.ii.9 | on; then read the names of the actors; and so grow to a | on: then read the names of the Actors: and so grow on to a |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.ii.91 | and then you will play bare-faced! But, masters, here | and then you will play bare-fac'd. But masters here |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.i.7 | Swifter than the moon's sphere, | swifter then ye Moons sphere; |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.i.53 | Then slip I from her bum. Down topples she, | Then slip I from her bum, downe topples she, |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.i.55 | And then the whole choir hold their hips and laugh, | And then the whole quire hold their hips, and loffe, |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.i.64 | Then I must be thy lady. But I know | Then I must be thy Lady: but I know |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.i.118 | Do you amend it, then! It lies in you. | Do you amend it then, it lies in you, |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.i.131 | Following – her womb then rich with my young squire – | Following (her wombe then rich with my yong squire) |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.i.179 | The next thing then she, waking, looks upon – | The next thing when she waking lookes vpon, |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.i.210 | Than to be used as you use your dog? | Then to be vsed as you doe your dogge. |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.i.225 | Then how can it be said I am alone | Then how can it be said I am alone, |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.i.266 | More fond on her than she upon her love. | More fond on her, then she vpon her loue; |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.ii.2 | Then for the third part of a minute hence: | Then for the third part of a minute hence, |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.ii.8 | Then to your offices, and let me rest. | Then to your offices, and let me rest. |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.ii.56 | So then two bosoms and a single troth. | So then two bosomes, and a single troth. |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.ii.57 | Then by your side no bed-room me deny, | Then by your side, no bed-roome me deny, |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.ii.69 | And then end life when I end loyalty. | And then end life, when I end loyalty: |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.ii.99 | If so, my eyes are oftener washed than hers. | If so, my eyes are oftner washt then hers. |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.ii.116 | Yet Hermia still loves you. Then be content. | Yet Hermia still loues you; then be content. |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.ii.161 | No? Then I well perceive you are not nigh. | No, then I well perceiue you are not nye, |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.i.30 | than your lion living; and we ought look to't. | then your Lyon liuing: and wee ought to looke to it. |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.i.50 | Why, then, may you leave a casement of the | Why then may you leaue a casement of the |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.i.55 | present the person of Moonshine. Then there is another | present the person of Moone-shine. Then there is another |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.i.66 | If that may be, then all is well. Come, sit down | If that may be, then all is well. Come, sit downe |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.i.81 | A stranger Pyramus than e'er played here. | A stranger Piramus, then ere plaid here. |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.2 | Then what it was that next came in her eye, | Then what it was that next came in her eye, |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.35 | This falls out better than I could devise! | This fals out better then I could deuise: |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.66 | Of maiden's patience. Hast thou slain him then? | Of maidens patience. Hast thou slaine him then? |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.73 | Than thine, thou serpent, never adder stung. | Then thine (thou serpent) neuer Adder stung. |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.77 | I pray thee, tell me then that he is well. | I pray thee tell me then that he is well. |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.92 | Then fate o'errules, that, one man holding truth, | Then fate ore-rules, that one man holding troth, |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.94 | About the wood go swifter than the wind, | About the wood, goe swifter then the winde, |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.101 | Swifter than arrow from the Tartar's bow. | Swifter then arrow from the Tartars bowe. |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.118 | Then will two at once woo one – | Then will two at once wooe one, |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.188 | Than all you fiery oes and eyes of light, | Then all yon fierie oes, and eies of light. |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.235 | This you should pity rather than despise. | This you should pittie, rather then despise. |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.249 | Thou canst compel no more than she entreat. | Thou canst compell, no more then she entreate. |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.250 | Thy threats have no more strength than her weak prayers. | Thy threats haue no more strength then her weak praise. |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.254 | I say I love thee more than he can do. | I say, I loue thee more then he can do. |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.271 | What? Can you do me greater harm than hate? | What, can you do me greater harme then hate? |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.276 | Why then, you left me – O, the gods forbid! – | Why then you left me (O the gods forbid |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.304 | Because she is something lower than myself | Because she is something lower then my selfe, |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.342 | Your hands than mine are quicker for a fray. | Your hands then mine, are quicker for a fray, |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.361 | Then stir Demetrius up with bitter wrong, | Then stirre Demetrius vp with bitter wrong; |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.366 | Then crush this herb into Lysander's eye – | Then crush this hearbe into Lysanders eie, |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.376 | And then I will her charmed eye release | And then I will her charmed eie release |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.403.2 | Follow me then | Follow me then |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.414 | When I come where he calls, then he is gone. | When I come where he cals, then he's gone. |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.415 | The villain is much lighter-heeled than I. | The villaine is much lighter heel'd then I: |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.426 | Nay, then thou mockest me. Thou shalt buy this dear | Nay then thou mock'st me; thou shalt buy this deere, |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND IV.i.50 | For she his hairy temples then had rounded | For she his hairy temples then had rounded, |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND IV.i.58 | I then did ask of her her changeling child, | I then did aske of her, her changeling childe, |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND IV.i.81 | Than common sleep of all these five the sense. | Then common sleepe; of all these, fine the sense. |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND IV.i.94 | Then, my queen, in silence sad, | Then my Queene in silence sad, |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND IV.i.97 | Swifter than the wandering moon. | Swifter then the wandering Moone. |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND IV.i.197 | Why, then, we are awake. Let's follow him, | Why then we are awake; lets follow him, |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND IV.ii.5 | If he come not, then the play is marred. It goes not | If he come not, then the play is mar'd. It goes not |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND V.i.2 | More strange than true. I never may believe | More strange then true. I neuer may beleeue |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND V.i.6 | More than cool reason ever comprehends. | more / Then coole reason euer comprehends. |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND V.i.9 | One sees more devils than vast hell can hold. | One sees more diuels then vaste hell can hold; |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND V.i.30.2 | More than to us | More then to vs, |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND V.i.112 | Consider then we come but in despite. | Consider then, we come but in despight. |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND V.i.210 | It must be your imagination then, and not | It must be your imagination then, & not |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND V.i.212 | If we imagine no worse of them than they of | If wee imagine no worse of them then they of |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND V.i.219 | Then know that I as Snug the joiner am | Then know that I, one Snug the Ioyner am |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND V.i.262 | And then came Pyramus. | And then came Piramus. |
A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND V.i.300 | Less than an ace, man; for he is dead. He is | Lesse then an ace man. For he is dead, he is |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA I.i.16 | expectation than you must expect of me to tell you how. | expectation, then you must expect of me to tell you how. |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA I.i.26 | truer than those that are so washed. How much better is | truer, then those that are so wash'd, how much better is |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA I.i.27 | it to weep at joy than to joy at weeping! | it to weepe at ioy, then to ioy at weeping? |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA I.i.54 | It is so, indeed; he is no less than a stuffed man; | It is so indeed, he is no lesse then a stuft man: |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA I.i.80 | He is sooner caught than the pestilence, and the taker | he is sooner caught then the pestilence, and the taker |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA I.i.100 | Signior Benedick, no; for then were you a child. | Signior Benedicke, no, for then were you a childe. |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA I.i.116 | Then is courtesy a turncoat. But it is certain I | Then is curtesie a turne-coate, but it is certaine I |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA I.i.164 | that were she other than she is, she were unhandsome; | that were shee other then she is, she were vnhandsome, |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA I.i.231 | with love than I will get again with drinking, pick out | with loue, then I will get againe with drinking, picke out |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA I.i.252 | I look for an earthquake too, then. | I looke for an earthquake too then. |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA I.i.295 | What need the bridge much broader than the flood? | What need ye bridge much broder then the flood? |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA I.i.305 | Then after, to her father will I break, | Then after, to her father will I breake, |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA I.iii.25 | I had rather be a canker in a hedge than a rose | I had rather be a canker in a hedge, then a rose |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA I.iii.27 | of all than to fashion a carriage to rob love from any. In | of all, then to fashion a carriage to rob loue from any: in |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.i.10 | Then half Signor Benedick's tongue in Count | Then halfe signior Benedicks tongue in Count |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.i.19 | Too curst is more than curst. I shall lessen | Too curst is more then curst, I shall lessen |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.i.31 | that hath a beard is more than a youth, and he that hath | that hath a beard, is more then a youth: and he that hath |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.i.32 | no beard is less than a man; and he that is more than a | no beard, is lesse then a man: and hee that is more then a |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.i.33 | youth is not for me, and he that is less than a man, I am | youth, is not for mee: and he that is lesse then a man, I am |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.i.36 | Well, then, go you into hell? | Well then, goe you into hell. |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.i.53 | than earth. Would it not grieve a woman to be | then earth, would it not grieue a woman to be |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.i.69 | then comes repentance and, with his bad legs, falls into | then comes repentance, and with his bad legs falls into |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.i.87.1 | Why, then, your visor should be thatched. | Why then your visor should be thatcht. |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.i.127 | and angers them, and then they laugh at him and beat | and angers them, and then they laugh at him, and beat |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.i.134 | at, strikes him into melancholy; and then there's a | at) strikes him into melancholly, and then there's a |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.i.224 | than a great thaw; huddling jest upon jest with such | then a great thaw, hudling iest vpon iest, with such |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.i.247 | embassage to the Pigmies, rather than hold three words' | embassage to the Pigmies, rather then hould three words |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.i.267 | How then? Sick? | How then? sicke? |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.i.309 | No, sure, my lord, my mother cried; but then | No sure my Lord, my Mother cried, but then |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.i.319 | ever sad then; for I have heard my daughter say, she hath | euer sad then: for I haue heard my daughter say, she hath |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.ii.30 | Go, then; find me a meet hour to draw Don | Goe then, finde me a meete howre, to draw on |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.iii.43 | To slander music any more than once. | To slander musicke any more then once. |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.iii.44 | It is the witness still of excellency | It is the witnesse still of excellency, / To slander Musicke any more then once. / Prince. It is the witnesse still of excellencie, |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.iii.64 | Then sigh not so, but let them go, | Then sigh not so, but let them goe, |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.iii.72 | Then sigh not so, but let them go, | Then sigh not so, &c. |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.iii.148 | Then down upon her knees she falls, weeps, | Then downe vpon her knees she falls, weepes, |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.iii.242 | I took no more pains for those thanks than | I tooke no more paines for those thankes, then |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.iii.245 | You take pleasure then in the message? | You take pleasure then in the message. |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.iii.251 | took no more pains for those thanks than you took pains | tooke no more paines for those thankes then you tooke paines |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.i.19 | To praise him more than ever man did merit. | To praise him more then euer man did merit, |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.i.32 | Then go we near her, that her ear lose nothing | Then go we neare her that her eare loose nothing, |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.i.50 | Of prouder stuff than that of Beatrice. | Of prowder stuffe then that of Beatrice: |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.i.105 | If it prove so, then loving goes by haps; | If it proue so, then louing goes by haps, |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.i.116 | Believe it better than reportingly. | Beleeue it better then reportingly. |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.ii.2 | and then go I toward Arragon. | and then go I toward Arragon. |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.ii.70 | played their parts with Beatrice, and then the two bears | played their parts with Beatrice, and then the two Beares |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.ii.103 | wedding-day. If you love her then, tomorrow wed her; | wedding day, if you loue her, then to morrow wed her: |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.iii.28 | Why, then, take no note of him, but let him go; | Why then take no note of him, but let him go, |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.iii.45 | Why, then, let them alone till they are sober; | Why then let them alone till they are sober, |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.iii.46 | if they make you not then the better answer, you may | if they make you not then the better answere, you may |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.iii.67 | Why, then, depart in peace, and let the child | Why then depart in peace, and let the childe |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.iii.88 | then all to bed. | then all to bed. |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.iii.101 | Stand thee close then under this penthouse, | Stand thee close then vnder this penthouse, |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.iii.136 | out more apparel than the man. But art not thou thyself | out more apparrell then the man; but art not thou thy selfe |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.iv.41 | Ye light o' love, with your heels! Then if your | Ye Light aloue with your heeles, then if your |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.v.14 | that is an old man and no honester than I. | that is an old man, and no honester then I. |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA IV.i.19 | How now! Interjections? Why, then, some be | How now! interiections? why then, some be |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA IV.i.85 | Why, then are you no maiden. Leonato, | Why then you are no maiden. Leonato, |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA IV.i.123 | Thought I thy spirits were stronger than thy shames, | Thought I thy spirits were stronger then thy shames, |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA IV.i.172 | Why seek'st thou then to cover with excuse | Why seek'st thou then to couer with excuse, |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA IV.i.177 | Than that which maiden modesty doth warrant, | Then that which maiden modestie doth warrant, |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA IV.i.218 | Why, then we rack the value, then we find | Why then we racke the value, then we finde |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA IV.i.228 | Than when she lived indeed. Then shall he mourn, | Then when she liu'd indeed: then shal he mourne, |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA IV.i.234 | Than I can lay it down in likelihood. | Then I can lay it downe in likelihood. |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA IV.i.277 | Why, then, God forgive me! | Why then God forgiue me. |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA IV.i.300 | come to take hands, and then, with public accusation, | come to take hands, and then with publike accusation |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA IV.i.321 | Use it for my love some other way than swearing | Vse it for my loue some other way then swearing |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA IV.ii.58 | And this is more, masters, than you can deny. | And this is more masters then you can deny, |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.i.32 | My griefs cry louder than advertisement. | My griefs cry lowder then aduertisement. |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.i.135 | Nay, then, give him another staff; this last was | Nay then giue him another staffe, this last was |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.i.186 | meet; and till then, peace be with him. | meete, and till then peace be with him. |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.i.194 | He is then a giant to an ape; but then is an ape | He is then a Giant to an Ape, but then is an Ape |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.i.229 | with my death than repeat over to my shame. The lady | with my death, then repeate ouer to my shame: the Ladie |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.i.283 | Tomorrow then I will expect your coming; | To morrow then I will expect your comming, |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.ii.4 | Will you then write me a sonnet in praise of | Will you then write me a Sonnet in praise of |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.ii.43 | O, stay but till then! | O stay but till then. |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.ii.44 | ‘ Then ’ is spoken; fare you well now. And yet, | Then, is spoken: fare you well now, and yet |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.ii.72 | in monument than the bell rings and the widow weeps. | in monuments, then the Bels ring, & the Widdow weepes. |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.iii.31 | And then to Leonato's we will go. | And then to Leonatoes we will goe. |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.iii.33 | Than this for whom we rendered up this woe. | Then this for whom we rendred vp this woe. |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.iv.55 | Why, then she's mine. Sweet, let me see your face. | Why then she's mine, sweet let me see your face. |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.iv.74.2 | Why no, no more than reason. | Why no, no more then reason. |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.iv.75 | Why, then your uncle and the Prince and Claudio | Why then your Vncle, and the Prince, & Claudio, |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.iv.77.2 | Troth no, no more than reason. | Troth no, no more then reason. |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.iv.78 | Why, then my cousin, Margaret, and Ursula | Why then my Cosin Margaret and Vrsula |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.iv.82 | 'Tis no such matter. Then you do not love me? | 'Tis no matter, then you doe not loue me? |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.iv.121 | There is no staff more reverend than one tipped with | there is no staff more reuerend then one tipt with |
Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.iv.126 | Dance, and then exeunt | Dance. |
Othello | Oth I.i.24 | More than a spinster – unless the bookish theoric, | More then a Spinster. Vnlesse the Bookish Theoricke: |
Othello | Oth I.i.41.1 | I would not follow him then. | I would not follow him then. |
Othello | Oth I.i.129 | We then have done you bold and saucy wrongs; | We then haue done you bold, and saucie wrongs. |
Othello | Oth I.ii.61 | Than with your weapons. | then with your Weapons. |
Othello | Oth I.iii.22 | That as it more concerns the Turk than Rhodes, | That as it more concernes the Turke then Rhodes, |
Othello | Oth I.iii.43 | 'Tis certain then for Cyprus. | 'Tis certaine then for Cyprus: |
Othello | Oth I.iii.87 | More than pertains to feats of broil and battle; | More then pertaines to Feats of Broiles, and Battaile, |
Othello | Oth I.iii.108 | Than these thin habits and poor likelihoods | Then these thin habits, and poore likely-hoods |
Othello | Oth I.iii.173.1 | Than their bare hands. | Then their bare hands. |
Othello | Oth I.iii.189 | I had rather to adopt a child than get it. | I had rather to adopt a Child, then get it. |
Othello | Oth I.iii.287 | Your son-in-law is far more fair than black. | Your Son-in-law is farre more Faire then Blacke. |
Othello | Oth I.iii.306 | and then we have a prescription to die, when death is | and then haue we a prescription to dye, when death is |
Othello | Oth I.iii.335 | toughness. I could never better stead thee than | toughnesse. I could neuer better steed thee then |
Othello | Oth I.iii.349 | delicate way than drowning. Make all the money thou | delicate way then drowning. Make all the Money thou |
Othello | Oth I.iii.355 | in compassing thy joy than to be drowned and go | in Compassing thy ioy, then to be drown'd, and go |
Othello | Oth II.i.163 | in the soldier than in the scholar. | in the Souldier, then in the Scholler. |
Othello | Oth II.i.209 | valiant – as they say base men being in love have then a | Valiant, (as they say base men being in Loue, haue then a |
Othello | Oth II.i.210 | nobility in their natures more than is native to them – | Nobilitie in their Natures, more then is natiue to them) |
Othello | Oth II.i.232 | than in putting on the mere form of civil and | then in putting on the meere forme of Ciuill, and |
Othello | Oth II.i.269 | shall then have to prefer them, and the impediment most | shall then haue to preferre them. And the impediment most |
Othello | Oth II.iii.68 | Why, then, let a soldier drink. | Why then let a Souldier drinke. |
Othello | Oth II.iii.91 | Then take thine auld cloak about thee. | And take thy awl'd Cloake about thee. |
Othello | Oth II.iii.93 | 'Fore God, this is a more exquisite song than the | Why this is a more exquisite Song then the |
Othello | Oth II.iii.112 | Why, very well; you must not think then that I | Why very well then: you must not thinke then, that I |
Othello | Oth II.iii.175 | Devesting them for bed; and then but now – | Deuesting them for Bed: and then, but now: |
Othello | Oth II.iii.213 | Thou dost deliver more or less than truth, | Thou dost deliuer more, or lesse then Truth, |
Othello | Oth II.iii.216 | Than it should do offence to Michael Cassio. | Then it should do offence to Michaell Cassio. |
Othello | Oth II.iii.227 | Outran my purpose and I returned the rather | Out-ran my purpose: and I return'd then rather |
Othello | Oth II.iii.261 | than in reputation. Reputation is an idle and most false | then in Reputation. Reputation is an idle, and most false |
Othello | Oth II.iii.266 | in his mood – a punishment more in policy than in | in his moode, (a punishment more in policie, then in |
Othello | Oth II.iii.270 | I will rather sue to be despised than to deceive so | I will rather sue to be despis'd, then to deceiue so |
Othello | Oth II.iii.312 | goodness not to do more than she is requested. This | goodnesse, not to do more then she is requested. This |
Othello | Oth II.iii.315 | naming, this crack of your love shall grow stronger than | naming, this cracke of your Loue, shall grow stronger, then |
Othello | Oth II.iii.326 | And what's he then that says I play the villain, | And what's he then, / That saies I play the Villaine? |
Othello | Oth II.iii.332 | As the free elements; and then for her | As the free Elements. And then for her |
Othello | Oth II.iii.338 | With his weak function. How am I then a villain | With his weake Function. How am I then a Villaine, |
Othello | Oth III.i.19 | Then put up your pipes in your bag, for I'll | Then put vp your Pipes in your bagge, for Ile |
Othello | Oth III.i.30.2 | You have not been abed then? | You haue not bin a-bed then? |
Othello | Oth III.iii.13.1 | Than in a politic distance. | Then in a politique distance. |
Othello | Oth III.iii.28 | Than give thy cause away. | Then giue thy cause away. |
Othello | Oth III.iii.58.1 | Tomorrow dinner then? | To morrow Dinner then? |
Othello | Oth III.iii.60 | Why, then, tomorrow night, or Tuesday morn, | Why then to morrow night, on Tuesday morne, |
Othello | Oth III.iii.113 | As if thou then hadst shut up in thy brain | As if thou then hadd'st shut vp in thy Braine |
Othello | Oth III.iii.128 | Why, then, I think Cassio's an honest man. | Why then I thinke Cassio's an honest man. |
Othello | Oth III.iii.147 | Shapes faults that are not – that your wisdom then, | Shapes faults that are not) that your wisedome |
Othello | Oth III.iii.206.3 | Why, go to, then! | Why go too then: |
Othello | Oth III.iii.218 | Than to suspicion. | Then to Suspition. |
Othello | Oth III.iii.241 | Sees and knows more, much more than he unfolds. | Sees, and knowes more, much more then he vnfolds. |
Othello | Oth III.iii.269 | Than keep a corner in the thing I love | Then keepe a corner in the thing I loue |
Othello | Oth III.iii.271 | Prerogatived are they less than the base. | Prerogatiu'd are they lesse then the Base, |
Othello | Oth III.iii.273 | Even then this forked plague is fated to us | Euen then, this forked plague is Fated to vs, |
Othello | Oth III.iii.275 | If she be false, O, then heaven mocks itself! | If she be false, Heauen mock'd it selfe: |
Othello | Oth III.iii.334.1 | Than but to know't a little. | Then but to know't a little. |
Othello | Oth III.iii.360.1 | Than answer my waked wrath! | Then answer my wak'd wrath. |
Othello | Oth III.iii.370.1 | Greater than that. | Greater then that. |
Othello | Oth III.iii.395 | To bring them to that prospect. Damn them then | To bring them to that Prospect: Damne them then, |
Othello | Oth III.iii.397 | More than their own! What then? How then? | More then their owne. What then? How then? |
Othello | Oth III.iii.418 | And then, sir, would he gripe and wring my hand, | And then (Sir) would he gripe, and wring my hand: |
Othello | Oth III.iii.419 | Cry ‘ O sweet creature!’ and then kiss me hard, | Cry, oh sweet Creature: then kisse me hard, |
Othello | Oth III.iii.421 | That grew upon my lips; then laid his leg | That grew vpon my lippes, laid his Leg ore my Thigh, |
Othello | Oth III.iii.422 | Over my thigh, and sighed and kissed, and then | And sigh, and kisse, and then cry cursed Fate, |
Othello | Oth III.iv.77 | Then would to God that I had never seen it! | Then would to Heauen, that I had neuer seene't? |
Othello | Oth III.iv.127 | Than for myself I dare. Let that suffice you. | Then for my selfe, I dare. Let that suffice you. |
Othello | Oth III.iv.134 | Something of moment then. I will go meet him. | Something of moment then: I will go meet him, |
Othello | Oth III.iv.171 | More tedious than the dial eightscore times! | More tedious then the Diall, eight score times? |
Othello | Oth IV.i.11 | What then? | What then? |
Othello | Oth IV.i.12 | Why, then, 'tis hers, my lord, and being hers, | Why then 'tis hers (my Lord) and being hers, |
Othello | Oth IV.i.31.1 | No more than he'll unswear. | No more then he'le vn-sweare. |
Othello | Oth IV.i.39 | and then to confess! I tremble at it. Nature would not | and then to confesse: I tremble at it. Nature would not |
Othello | Oth IV.i.63 | There's many a beast then in a populous city, | Ther's many a Beast then in a populous Citty, |
Othello | Oth IV.i.191 | O, a thousand, thousand times! – And then of | Oh, a thousand, a thousand times: / And then of |
Othello | Oth IV.ii.1 | You have seen nothing then? | You haue seene nothing then? |
Othello | Oth IV.ii.4 | But then I saw no harm; and then I heard | But then I saw no harme: and then I heard, |
Othello | Oth IV.ii.87.2 | I cry you mercy then: | I cry you mercy then. |
Othello | Oth IV.ii.177 | all conveniency, than suppliest me with the least advantage | all conueniencie, then suppliest me with the least aduantage |
Othello | Oth IV.ii.205 | this instant do build on thee a better opinion than ever | this instant do build on thee a better opinion then euer |
Othello | Oth IV.ii.213 | reason to believe now than ever – I mean purpose, | reason to beleeue now then euer (I meane purpose, |
Othello | Oth IV.ii.221 | Is that true? Why, then Othello and Desdemona | Is that true? Why then Othello and Desdemona |
Othello | Oth IV.iii.10 | How goes it now? He looks gentler than he did. | How goes it now? He lookes gentler then he did. |
Othello | Oth IV.iii.52 | I called my love false love, but what said he then? | I call'd my Loue false Loue: but what said he then? |
Othello | Oth IV.iii.101 | Then let them use us well: else let them know | Then let them vse vs well: else let them know, |
Othello | Oth V.i.25 | But that my coat is better than thou think'st. | But that my Coate is better then thou know'st: |
Othello | Oth V.i.45 | Nobody come? Then shall I bleed to death. | Nobody come: then shall I bleed to death. |
Othello | Oth V.ii.4 | Nor scar that whiter skin of hers than snow, | Nor scarre that whiter skin of hers, then Snow, |
Othello | Oth V.ii.7 | Put out the light, and then put out the light: | Put out the Light, and then put out the Light: |
Othello | Oth V.ii.33.3 | Then heaven | Then Heauen |
Othello | Oth V.ii.37 | And yet I fear you: for you're fatal then | And yet I feare you: for you're fatall then |
Othello | Oth V.ii.57.1 | Then Lord have mercy on me! | O Heauen haue mercy on me. |
Othello | Oth V.ii.66.2 | He found it then. | He found it then: |
Othello | Oth V.ii.111 | She comes more nearer earth than she was wont, | She comes more neerer Earth then she was wont, |
Othello | Oth V.ii.116 | Not Cassio killed! Then murder's out of tune, | Not Cassio kill'd? Then Murther's out of tune, |
Othello | Oth V.ii.160.1 | Than thou wast worthy her. | Then thou was't worthy her. |
Othello | Oth V.ii.176 | Than what he found himself was apt and true. | Then what he found himselfe was apt, and true. |
Othello | Oth V.ii.191 | I thought so then; I'll kill myself for grief. | I thought so then: Ile kill my selfe for greefe. |
Othello | Oth V.ii.226 | More than indeed belonged to such a trifle – | (More then indeed belong'd to such a Trifle) |
Othello | Oth V.ii.255 | Look in upon me then, and speak with me, | Looke in vpon me then, and speake with me, |
Othello | Oth V.ii.262 | Than twenty times your stop. but, O vain boast! – | Then twenty times your stop. But (oh vaine boast) |
Othello | Oth V.ii.339 | Nor set down aught in malice. Then must you speak | Nor set downe ought in malice. / Then must you speake, |
Othello | Oth V.ii.344 | Richer than all his tribe; of one whose subdued eyes, | Richer then all his Tribe: Of one, whose subdu'd Eyes, |
Othello | Oth V.ii.358 | More fell than anguish, hunger, or the sea, | More fell then Anguish, Hunger, or the Sea: |
Pericles | Per Chorus.I.17 | This Antioch, then. Antiochus the Great | This Antioch, then Antiochus the great, |
Pericles | Per I.i.48 | I'll make my will then, and as sick men do | Ile make my Will then, and as sicke men doe, |
Pericles | Per I.i.57 | Scorning advice, read the conclusion then, | Scorning aduice; read the conclusion then: |
Pericles | Per I.i.96 | He's more secure to keep it shut than shown, | Hee's more secure to keepe it shut, then showne. |
Pericles | Per I.i.109 | Then give my tongue like leave to love my head. | Then giue my tongue like leaue, to loue my head. |
Pericles | Per I.i.120 | And until then your entertain shall be | And vntill then, your entertaine shall bee |
Pericles | Per I.i.126 | Then were it certain you were not so bad | Then were it certaine you were not so bad, |
Pericles | Per I.i.136 | Blush not in actions blacker than the night | Blush not in actions blacker then the night, |
Pericles | Per I.i.142 | Then, lest my life be cropped to keep you clear, | Then least my life be cropt, to keepe you cleare, |
Pericles | Per I.ii.11 | Then it is thus: the passions of the mind, | Then it is thus, the passions of the mind, |
Pericles | Per I.ii.47 | I cannot be much lower than my knees. | I cannot be much lower then my knees. |
Pericles | Per I.ii.50.1 | And then return to us. | And then returne to vs, |
Pericles | Per I.ii.70 | Attend me then. I went to Antioch, | Attend me then, I went to Antioch, |
Pericles | Per I.ii.85 | Decrease not, but grow faster than the years. | Decrease not, but grow faster then the yeares, |
Pericles | Per I.ii.110 | Day serves not light more faithful than I'll be. | day serues not light more faithfull then Ile be. |
Pericles | Per I.ii.115 | Tyre, I now look from thee then, and to Tarsus | Tyre I now looke from thee then, and to Tharsus |
Pericles | Per I.iv.18 | I'll then discourse our woes, felt several years, | Ile then discourse our woes felt seuerall yeares, |
Pericles | Per Chorus.II.5 | Be quiet then as men should be | Be quiet then, as men should bee, |
Pericles | Per II.i.65 | than we can do with working. | then we can doe with working. |
Pericles | Per II.i.66 | Canst thou catch any fishes then? | Canst thou catch any Fishes then? |
Pericles | Per II.i.68 | Nay then, thou wilt starve, sure, | Nay then thou wilt starue sure: |
Pericles | Per II.i.74 | And have no more of life than may suffice | And haue no more of life then may suffize, |
Pericles | Per II.i.88 | But crave? Then I'll turn craver | But craue? Then Ile turne Crauer |
Pericles | Per II.i.90 | Why, are your beggars whipped then? | Why, are you Beggers whipt then? |
Pericles | Per II.i.93 | office than to be beadle. But, master, I'll go draw up the | office, then to be Beadle: But Maister, Ile goe draw vp the |
Pericles | Per II.i.144 | I'll pay your bounties; till then rest your debtor. | Ile pay your bounties; till then, rest your debter. |
Pericles | Per II.i.166 | Then honour be but a goal to my will, | Then Honour be but a Goale to my Will, |
Pericles | Per II.ii.47 | He had need mean better than his outward show | He had need meane better, then his outward shew |
Pericles | Per II.ii.50 | To have practised more the whipstock than the lance. | To haue practis'd more the Whipstocke, then the Launce. |
Pericles | Per II.iii.5 | Were more than you expect, or more than's fit, | Were more then you expect, or more then's fit, |
Pericles | Per II.iii.12 | 'Tis more by fortune, lady, than by merit. | Tis more by Fortune (Lady) then my Merit. |
Pericles | Per II.iii.34 | He has done no more than other knights have done. | ha's done no more / Then other Knights haue done, |
Pericles | Per II.iv.21 | Follow me then. Lord Helicane, a word. | Follow me then: Lord Hellicane, a word. |
Pericles | Per II.iv.26 | Wrong not yourself then, noble Helicane, | Wrong not your selfe then, noble Hellican, |
Pericles | Per II.iv.57 | Then you love us, we you, and we'll clasp hands. | Then you loue vs, we you, & wee'le claspe hands: |
Pericles | Per II.v.68 | Then, as you are as virtuous as fair, | Then as you are as vertuous, as faire, |
Pericles | Per II.v.95 | And then, with what haste you can, get you to bed. | And then with what haste you can, get you to bed. |
Pericles | Per Chorus.III.15.5 | lords kneel to him. Then enter Thaisa with child, with | Lords kneele to him; then enter Thaysa with child, with |
Pericles | Per III.i.7 | How does my queen? Thou storm, venomously | How does my Queene? then storme venomously, |
Pericles | Per III.i.35 | Even at the first thy loss is more than can | Euen at the first, thy losse is more then can |
Pericles | Per III.ii.27 | Than nobleness and riches. Careless heirs | then Noblenesse & Riches; / Carelesse Heyres, |
Pericles | Per III.ii.39 | Than to be thirsty after tottering honour, | Then to be thirsty after tottering honour, |
Pericles | Per III.iii.34.1 | Than yours, my lord. | then yours, my Lord. |
Pericles | Per III.iii.36 | Then give you up to the masked Neptune, and | then giue you vp to the mask'd Neptune, and |
Pericles | Per IV.i.10 | The fitter then the gods should have her. | The fitter then the Gods should haue her. |
Pericles | Per IV.i.33 | With more than foreign heart. We every day | with more then forraine heart, wee euery day |
Pericles | Per IV.ii.7 | but poor three, and they can do no more than they can | but poore three, and they can doe no more then they can |
Pericles | Per IV.ii.85 | If it please the gods to defend you by men, then | If it please the Gods to defend you by men, then |
Pericles | Per IV.iii.7 | Much less in blood than virtue, yet a princess | much lesse in bloud then vertue, yet a Princes |
Pericles | Per IV.iii.28.2 | Be it so, then. | Be it so then, |
Pericles | Per IV.iv.50 | In her unholy service. Patience then, | In her vnholie seruice: Patience then, |
Pericles | Per IV.vi.1 | Well, I had rather than twice the worth of her | Well, I had rather then twice the worth of her |
Pericles | Per IV.vi.36 | less than it gives a good report to a number to be chaste. | lesse then it giues a good report to a number to be chaste. |
Pericles | Per IV.vi.94 | Diseases have been sold dearer than physic – | diseases haue beene solde deerer then Phisicke, |
Pericles | Per IV.vi.142 | An if she were a thornier piece of ground than she | And if shee were a thornyer peece of ground then shee |
Pericles | Per IV.vi.176 | Any of these ways are yet better than this, | anie of these wayes are yet better then this: |
Pericles | Per V.i.104 | No other than I appear. | no other then I appeare. |
Pericles | Per V.i.210 | Is it no more to be your daughter than | Is it no more to be your daughter, then |
Pericles | Per V.ii.2 | More a little, and then dumb. | More a little, and then dum. |
Pericles | Per V.iii.53.2 | 'Twas Helicanus then. | T'was Hellicanus then. |
Pericles | Per V.iii.63 | More like a god than you. Will you deliver | more like a god then you, will you deliuer |
Richard II | R2 I.i.5 | Which then our leisure would not let us hear – | Which then our leysure would not let vs heare, |
Richard II | R2 I.i.15.1 | Then call them to our presence. | Then call them to our presence |
Richard II | R2 I.i.74 | As to take up mine honour's pawn, then stoop. | As to take vp mine Honors pawne, then stoope. |
Richard II | R2 I.i.124 | Then, Bolingbroke, as low as to thy heart | Then Bullingbrooke, as low as to thy heart. |
Richard II | R2 I.i.184 | Then, dear my liege, mine honour let me try. | Then (deere my Liege) mine Honor let me trie, |
Richard II | R2 I.ii.2 | Doth more solicit me than your exclaims | Doth more solicite me then your exclaimes, |
Richard II | R2 I.ii.42 | Where then, alas, may I complain myself? | Where then (alas may I) complaint my selfe? ? |
Richard II | R2 I.ii.44 | Why then, I will. Farewell, old Gaunt. | Why then I will: farewell old Gaunt. |
Richard II | R2 I.iii.5 | Why then, the champions are prepared, and stay | Why then the Champions, are prepar'd, and stay |
Richard II | R2 I.iii.7.3 | Green. When they are set, enter Mowbray, Duke of | Then Mowbray in Armor, |
Richard II | R2 I.iii.50 | Then let us take a ceremonious leave | Then let vs take a ceremonious leaue |
Richard II | R2 I.iii.91 | More than my dancing soul doth celebrate | More then my dancing soule doth celebrate |
Richard II | R2 I.iii.123.1 | A long flourish. King Richard consults his nobles, then | A long Flourish. |
Richard II | R2 I.iii.162 | Than an unstringed viol or a harp, | Then an vnstringed Vyall, or a Harpe, |
Richard II | R2 I.iii.172 | What is thy sentence then but speechless death, | What is thy sentence then, but speechlesse death, |
Richard II | R2 I.iii.176 | Then thus I turn me from my country's light, | Then thus I turne me from my countries light |
Richard II | R2 I.iii.235 | Why at our justice seemest thou then to lour? | Why at our Iustice seem'st thou then to lowre? |
Richard II | R2 I.iii.303 | Than when he bites, but lanceth not the sore. | Then when it bites, but lanceth not the sore. |
Richard II | R2 I.iii.306 | Then, England's ground, farewell! Sweet soil, adieu, | Then Englands ground farewell: sweet soil adieu, |
Richard II | R2 I.iv.7 | Which then blew bitterly against our faces, | Which then grew bitterly against our face, |
Richard II | R2 II.i.10 | Than they whom youth and ease have taught to glose. | Then they whom youth and ease haue taught to glose, |
Richard II | R2 II.i.11 | More are men's ends marked than their lives before. | More are mens ends markt, then their liues before, |
Richard II | R2 II.i.14 | Writ in remembrance more than things long past. | Writ in remembrance, more then things long past; |
Richard II | R2 II.i.18 | As praises, of whose taste the wise are fond; | As praises of his state: then there are sound |
Richard II | R2 II.i.27 | Then all too late comes counsel to be heard | That all too late comes counsell to be heard, |
Richard II | R2 II.i.68 | How happy then were my ensuing death! | How happy then were my ensuing death? |
Richard II | R2 II.i.95 | Thy deathbed is no lesser than thy land, | Thy death-bed is no lesser then the Land, |
Richard II | R2 II.i.101 | Whose compass is no bigger than thy head, | Whose compasse is no bigger then thy head, |
Richard II | R2 II.i.103 | The waste is no whit lesser than thy land. | The waste is no whit lesser then thy Land: |
Richard II | R2 II.i.112 | Is it not more than shame to shame it so? | Is it not more then shame, to shame it so? |
Richard II | R2 II.i.137 | Convey me to my bed, then to my grave. | Conuey me to my bed, then to my graue, |
Richard II | R2 II.i.175 | Than was that young and princely gentleman. | Then was that yong and Princely Gentleman, |
Richard II | R2 II.i.197 | Let not tomorrow then ensue today. | Let not to morrow then insue to day, |
Richard II | R2 II.i.255 | More hath he spent in peace than they in wars. | More hath he spent in peace, then they in warres. |
Richard II | R2 II.i.277 | Then thus: I have from Le Port Blanc, | Then thus: I haue from Port le Blan |
Richard II | R2 II.i.291 | If then we shall shake off our slavish yoke, | If then we shall shake off our slauish yoake, |
Richard II | R2 II.ii.13 | More than with parting from my lord the King. | More then with parting from my Lord the King. |
Richard II | R2 II.ii.22 | Find shapes of grief more than himself to wail, | Finde shapes of greefe, more then himselfe to waile, |
Richard II | R2 II.ii.24 | Of what it is not. Then, thrice-gracious Queen, | Of what it is not: then thrice-gracious Queene, |
Richard II | R2 II.ii.25 | More than your lord's departure weep not – more is not seen, | More then your Lords departure weep not, more's not seene; |
Richard II | R2 II.ii.45 | Then wherefore dost thou hope he is not shipped? | Then wherefore dost thou hope he is not shipt? |
Richard II | R2 II.ii.132 | If judgement lie in them, then so do we, | If iudgement lye in them, then so do we, |
Richard II | R2 II.iii.16 | Than hope enjoyed. By this the weary lords | Then hope enioy'd: By this, the wearie Lords |
Richard II | R2 II.iii.20 | Than your good words. But who comes here? | Then your good words: but who comes here? |
Richard II | R2 II.iii.35 | Then with directions to repair to Ravenspurgh. | Then with direction to repaire to Rauenspurgh. |
Richard II | R2 II.iii.40 | Then learn to know him now – this is the Duke. | Then learne to know him now: this is the Duke. |
Richard II | R2 II.iii.91 | But then more ‘ why ’ – why have they dared to march | But more then why, why haue they dar'd to march |
Richard II | R2 II.iii.102 | O then how quickly should this arm of mine, | Oh then, how quickly should this Arme of mine, |
Richard II | R2 II.iii.117 | I see old Gaunt alive. O then, my father, | I see old Gaunt aliue. Oh then my Father, |
Richard II | R2 III.i.28 | This and much more, much more than twice all this, | This, and much more, much more then twice all this, |
Richard II | R2 III.i.32 | Than Bolingbroke to England. Lords, farewell. | Then Bullingbrooke to England. |
Richard II | R2 III.ii.39 | Then thieves and robbers range abroad unseen | Then Theeues and Robbers raunge abroad vnseene, |
Richard II | R2 III.ii.44 | Then murders, treasons, and detested sins – | Then Murthers, Treasons, and detested sinnes |
Richard II | R2 III.ii.61 | A glorious angel. Then if angels fight, | A glorious Angell: then if Angels fight, |
Richard II | R2 III.ii.65 | Than this weak arm. Discomfort guides my tongue | Then this weake arme; discomfort guides my tongue, |
Richard II | R2 III.ii.92 | Than can my care-tuned tongue deliver him. | Then can my care-tun'd tongue deliuer him. |
Richard II | R2 III.ii.111 | With hard bright steel, and hearts harder than steel. | With hard bright Steele, and hearts harder then Steele: |
Richard II | R2 III.ii.120 | And all goes worse than I have power to tell. | And all goes worse then I haue power to tell. |
Richard II | R2 III.ii.132 | Three Judases, each one thrice worse than Judas – | Three Iudasses, each one thrice worse then Iudas, |
Richard II | R2 III.iii.15 | Mistake not, uncle, further than you should. | Mistake not (Vnckle) farther then you should. |
Richard II | R2 III.iii.16 | Take not, good cousin, further than you should, | Take not (good Cousin) farther then you should. |
Richard II | R2 III.iii.55 | With no less terror than the elements | With no lesse terror then the Elements |
Richard II | R2 III.iii.62.2 | then a flourish. King Richard appeareth on the | then a Flourish. Enter on the |
Richard II | R2 III.iii.113 | Than for his lineal royalties, and to beg | Then for his Lineall Royalties, and to begge |
Richard II | R2 III.iii.137 | As is my grief, or lesser than my name, | As is my Griefe, or lesser then my Name, |
Richard II | R2 III.iii.193 | Than my unpleased eye see your courtesy. | Then my vnpleas'd Eye see your Courtesie. |
Richard II | R2 III.iii.209.2 | Then I must not say no. | Then I must not say, no. |
Richard II | R2 III.iv.67 | What, think you then the King shall be deposed? | What thinke you the King shall be depos'd? |
Richard II | R2 III.iv.78 | Darest thou, thou little better thing than earth, | Dar'st thou, thou little better thing then earth, |
Richard II | R2 III.iv.91 | I speak no more than everyone doth know. | I speake no more, then euery one doth know. |
Richard II | R2 IV.i.6 | Then set before my face the Lord Aumerle. | Then set before my face, the Lord Aumerle. |
Richard II | R2 IV.i.17 | Than Bolingbroke's return to England, | Then Bullingbrookes returne to England; |
Richard II | R2 IV.i.62 | 'Tis very true. You were in presence then, | My Lord, / 'Tis very true: You were in presence then, |
Richard II | R2 IV.i.119 | Of noble Richard! Then true noblesse would | Of Noble Richard: then true Noblenesse would |
Richard II | R2 IV.i.173 | Am I both priest and clerk? Well then, Amen. | Am I both Priest, and Clarke? well then, Amen. |
Richard II | R2 IV.i.271 | The commons will not then be satisfied. | The Commons will not then be satisfy'd. |
Richard II | R2 IV.i.302 | And then be gone and trouble you no more. | And then be gone, and trouble you no more. |
Richard II | R2 IV.i.304 | ‘ Fair cousin ’? I am greater than a king; | Faire Cousin? I am greater then a King: |
Richard II | R2 IV.i.306 | Were then but subjects; being now a subject | Were then but subiects; being now a subiect, |
Richard II | R2 IV.i.312 | Then give me leave to go. | Then giue me leaue to goe. |
Richard II | R2 V.i.58 | More than it is ere foul sin, gathering head, | More then it is, ere foule sinne, gathering head, |
Richard II | R2 V.i.73 | And then betwixt me and my married wife. | And then betwixt me, and my marryed Wife. |
Richard II | R2 V.i.85 | Then whither he goes, thither let me go. | Then whither he goes, thither let me goe. |
Richard II | R2 V.i.88 | Better far off than, near, be ne'er the nea'er. | Better farre off, then neere, be ne're the neere. |
Richard II | R2 V.ii.7 | Then, as I said, the Duke, great Bolingbroke, | Then, as I said, the Duke, great Bullingbrooke, |
Richard II | R2 V.ii.19 | Bare-headed, lower than his proud steed's neck | Bare-headed, lower then his proud Steeds necke, |
Richard II | R2 V.ii.58.2 | No matter, then, who see it. | No matter then who sees it, |
Richard II | R2 V.ii.83.1 | Than my poor life must answer. | Then my poore life must answer. |
Richard II | R2 V.ii.100 | We'll keep him here. Then what is that to him? | Wee'l keepe him heere: then what is that to him? |
Richard II | R2 V.iii.35 | Then give me leave that I may turn the key | Then giue me leaue, that I may turne the key, |
Richard II | R2 V.iii.108 | Our prayers do outpray his: then let them have | Our prayers do out-pray his, then let them haue |
Richard II | R2 V.v.15 | And then again, | & then again, |
Richard II | R2 V.v.33 | Then treasons make me wish myself a beggar; | Then Treason makes me wish my selfe a Beggar, |
Richard II | R2 V.v.34 | And so I am. Then crushing penury | And so I am. Then crushing penurie, |
Richard II | R2 V.v.36 | Then am I kinged again; and by and by | Then am I king'd againe: and by and by, |
Richard II | R2 V.vi.26 | More than thou hast, and with it joy thy life. | More then thou hast, and with it ioy thy life: |
Richard III | R3 I.i.112 | Touches me deeper than you can imagine. | Touches me deeper then you can imagine. |
Richard III | R3 I.i.153 | For then I'll marry Warwick's youngest daughter. | For then, Ile marry Warwickes yongest daughter. |
Richard III | R3 I.i.162 | When they are gone, then must I count my gains. | When they are gone, then must I count my gaines. |
Richard III | R3 I.ii.19 | Than I can wish to wolves – spiders, toads, | Then I can wish to Wolues, to Spiders, Toades, |
Richard III | R3 I.ii.28 | Than I am made by my young lord and thee! | Then I am made by my young Lord, and thee. |
Richard III | R3 I.ii.40 | Advance thy halberd higher than my breast, | Aduance thy Halbert higher then my brest, |
Richard III | R3 I.ii.81 | Fairer than tongue can name thee, let me have | Fairer then tongue can name thee, let me haue |
Richard III | R3 I.ii.83 | Fouler than heart can think thee, thou canst make | Fouler then heart can thinke thee, / Thou can'st make |
Richard III | R3 I.ii.89.2 | Then say they were not slain. | Then say they were not slaine: |
Richard III | R3 I.ii.91.2 | Why, then he is alive. | Why then he is aliue. |
Richard III | R3 I.ii.102 | Dost grant me, hedgehog? Then God grant me too | Do'st grant me Hedge-hogge, / Then God graunt me too |
Richard III | R3 I.ii.108 | For he was fitter for that place than earth. | For he was fitter for that place then earth. |
Richard III | R3 I.ii.141 | He lives, that loves thee better than he could. | He liues, that loues thee better then he could. |
Richard III | R3 I.ii.186 | Then bid me kill myself, and I will do it. | Then bid me kill my selfe, and I will do it. |
Richard III | R3 I.ii.195 | Then never man was true. | Then neuer Man was true. |
Richard III | R3 I.ii.197 | Say then my peace is made. | Say then my Peace is made. |
Richard III | R3 I.ii.222.2 | 'Tis more than you deserve; | 'Tis more then you deserue: |
Richard III | R3 I.ii.261 | And then return lamenting to my love. | And then returne lamenting to my Loue. |
Richard III | R3 I.iii.59 | Whom God preserve better than you would wish! – | (Whom God preserue better then you would wish) |
Richard III | R3 I.iii.93 | She may do more, sir, than denying that; | She may do more sir then denying that: |
Richard III | R3 I.iii.95 | And then deny her aiding hand therein | And then deny her ayding hand therein, |
Richard III | R3 I.iii.107 | Than a great queen, with this condition, | Then a great Queene, with this condition, |
Richard III | R3 I.iii.125 | Yea, and much better blood than his or thine. | I and much better blood / Then his, or thine. |
Richard III | R3 I.iii.146 | We followed then our lord, our sovereign king; | We follow'd then our Lord, our Soueraigne King, |
Richard III | R3 I.iii.168 | Than death can yield me here by my abode. | Then death can yeeld me here, by my abode. |
Richard III | R3 I.iii.176 | And then, to dry them, gav'st the Duke a clout | And then to dry them, gau'st the Duke a Clowt, |
Richard III | R3 I.iii.178 | His curses then, from bitterness of soul | His Curses then, from bitternesse of Soule, |
Richard III | R3 I.iii.186 | Northumberland, then present, wept to see it. | Northumberland, then present, wept to see it. |
Richard III | R3 I.iii.195 | Why then, give way, dull clouds, to my quick curses! | Why then giue way dull Clouds to my quick Curses. |
Richard III | R3 I.iii.219 | And then hurl down their indignation | And then hurle downe their indignation |
Richard III | R3 I.iii.234 | I cry thee mercy then; for I did think | I cry thee mercie then: for I did thinke, |
Richard III | R3 I.iii.333 | But then I sigh, and, with a piece of Scripture, | But then I sigh, and with a peece of Scripture, |
Richard III | R3 I.iv.44 | O then began the tempest to my soul! | O then, began the Tempest to my Soule. |
Richard III | R3 I.iv.52 | And so he vanished. Then came wandering by | And so he vanish'd. Then came wand'ring by, |
Richard III | R3 I.iv.90 | 'Tis better, sir, than to be tedious. | 'Tis better (Sir) then to be tedious: |
Richard III | R3 I.iv.106 | Why, then he'll say we stabbed him | Why then hee'l say, we stab'd him |
Richard III | R3 I.iv.157 | of thy sword, and then throw him into the malmsey-butt | of thy Sword, and then throw him into the Malmesey-Butte |
Richard III | R3 I.iv.200 | That thou shalt do no murder. Will you then | That thou shalt do no murther. Will you then |
Richard III | R3 I.iv.223 | Who made thee then a bloody minister | Who made thee then a bloudy minister, |
Richard III | R3 I.iv.234 | Than Edward will for tidings of my death. | Then Edward will for tydings of my death. |
Richard III | R3 I.iv.286 | For this will out, and then I must not stay. | For this will out, and then I must not stay. |
Richard III | R3 II.i.73 | More than the infant that is born tonight. | More then the Infant that is borne to night: |
Richard III | R3 II.i.95 | Deserve not worse than wretched Clarence did, | Deserue not worse then wretched Clarence did, |
Richard III | R3 II.i.100 | Then say at once what is it thou requests. | Then say at once, what is it thou requests. |
Richard III | R3 II.ii.12 | Then you conclude, my grandam, he is dead? | Then you conclude, (my Grandam) he is dead: |
Richard III | R3 II.ii.141 | Then be it so; and go we to determine | Then be it so, and go we to determine |
Richard III | R3 II.ii.154 | Toward Ludlow then, for we'll not stay behind. | Toward London then, for wee'l not stay behinde. |
Richard III | R3 II.iii.9 | Then, masters, look to see a troublous world. | Then Masters looke to see a troublous world. |
Richard III | R3 II.iii.15 | No doubt shall then, and till then, govern well. | No doubt shall then, and till then gouerne well. |
Richard III | R3 II.iii.19 | For then this land was famously enriched | For then this Land was famously enrich'd |
Richard III | R3 II.iii.20 | With politic grave counsel; then the King | With politike graue Counsell; then the King |
Richard III | R3 II.iii.33 | When great leaves fall, the winter is at hand; | When great leaues fall, then Winter is at hand; |
Richard III | R3 II.iii.37 | 'Tis more than we deserve or I expect. | 'Tis more then we deserue, or I expect. |
Richard III | R3 II.iv.12 | More than my brother. ‘ Ay,’ quoth my uncle Gloucester, | More then my Brother. I, quoth my Vnkle Glouster, |
Richard III | R3 II.iv.25 | To touch his growth nearer than he touched mine. | To touch his growth, neerer then he toucht mine. |
Richard III | R3 III.i.10 | Than of his outward show, which, God He knows, | Then of his outward shew, which God he knowes, |
Richard III | R3 III.i.53 | Then, taking him from thence that is not there, | Then taking him from thence, that is not there, |
Richard III | R3 III.i.66 | Then where you please, and shall be thought most fit | Then where you please, and shall be thought most fit |
Richard III | R3 III.i.107 | Then he is more beholding to you than I. | Then he is more beholding to you, then I. |
Richard III | R3 III.i.115 | A greater gift than that I'll give my cousin. | A greater gift then that, Ile giue my Cousin. |
Richard III | R3 III.i.118 | O, then I see you will part but with light gifts! | O then I see, you will part but with light gifts, |
Richard III | R3 III.i.167 | What think'st thou then of Stanley? Will not he? | What think'st thou then of Stanley? Will not hee? |
Richard III | R3 III.i.169 | Well then, no more but this: go, gentle Catesby, | Well then, no more but this: / Goe gentle Catesby, |
Richard III | R3 III.ii.9 | And then? | What then? |
Richard III | R3 III.ii.10 | Then certifies your lordship that this night | Then certifies your Lordship, that this Night |
Richard III | R3 III.ii.92 | Than some that have accused them wear their hats. | Then some that haue accus'd them, weare their Hats. |
Richard III | R3 III.ii.98 | Than when I met thee last where now we meet. | Then when thou met'st me last, where now we meet: |
Richard III | R3 III.ii.99 | Then was I going prisoner to the Tower | Then was I going Prisoner to the Tower, |
Richard III | R3 III.ii.103 | And I in better state than e'er I was. | And I in better state then ere I was. |
Richard III | R3 III.iii.17 | Then cursed she Richard, then cursed she Buckingham, | Then curs'd shee Richard, / Thencurs'd shee Buckingham, |
Richard III | R3 III.iii.18 | Then cursed she Hastings. O, remember, God, | Then curs'd shee Hastings. Oh remember God, |
Richard III | R3 III.iv.6 | Tomorrow then I judge a happy day. | To morrow then I iudge a happie day. |
Richard III | R3 III.iv.11 | He knows no more of mine than I of yours; | He knowes no more of mine, then I of yours, |
Richard III | R3 III.iv.12 | Or I of his, my lord, than you of mine. | Or I of his, my Lord, then you of mine: |
Richard III | R3 III.iv.29 | Than my Lord Hastings no man might be bolder. | Then my Lord Hastings, no man might be bolder, |
Richard III | R3 III.iv.52 | Can lesser hide his love or hate than he, | Can lesser hide his loue, or hate, then hee, |
Richard III | R3 III.iv.67 | Then be your eyes the witness of their evil. | Then be your eyes the witnesse of their euill. |
Richard III | R3 III.iv.97 | Which we more hunt for than the grace of God! | Which we more hunt for, then the grace of God! |
Richard III | R3 III.v.3 | And then again begin, and stop again, | And then againe begin, and stop againe, |
Richard III | R3 III.v.87 | My princely father, then had wars in France, | My Princely Father, then had Warres in France, |
Richard III | R3 III.vii.10 | As being got, your father then in France, | As being got, your Father then in France, |
Richard III | R3 III.vii.31 | Then he was urged to tell my tale again: | Then he was vrg'd to tell my Tale againe: |
Richard III | R3 III.vii.43 | Will not the Mayor then and his brethren come? | Will not the Maior then, and his Brethren, come? |
Richard III | R3 III.vii.67 | No less importing than our general good, | No lesse importing then our generall good, |
Richard III | R3 III.vii.116 | Know then it is your fault that you resign | Know then, it is your fault, that you resigne |
Richard III | R3 III.vii.149 | Then, on the other side, I checked my friends. | Then on the other side I check'd my friends. |
Richard III | R3 III.vii.151 | And then, in speaking, not to incur the last – | And then in speaking, not to incurre the last, |
Richard III | R3 III.vii.162 | Than in my greatness covet to be hid | Then in my Greatnesse couet to be hid, |
Richard III | R3 III.vii.194 | Then, good my lord, take to your royal self | Then good, my Lord, take to your Royall selfe |
Richard III | R3 III.vii.238 | Then I salute you with this royal title – | Then I salute you with this Royall Title, |
Richard III | R3 III.vii.243 | Tomorrow then we will attend your grace, | To morrow then we will attend your Grace, |
Richard III | R3 IV.i.8 | No farther than the Tower, and, as I guess, | No farther then the Tower, and as I guesse, |
Richard III | R3 IV.i.24 | Then bring me to their sights. I'll bear thy blame | Then bring me to their sights, Ile beare thy blame, |
Richard III | R3 IV.i.69 | And that dear saint which then I weeping followed – | And that deare Saint, which then I weeping follow'd: |
Richard III | R3 IV.i.76 | Than thou hast made me by my dear lord's death!’ | Then thou hast made me, by my deare Lords death. |
Richard III | R3 IV.i.88 | No more than with my soul I mourn for yours. | No more, then with my soule I mourne for yours. |
Richard III | R3 IV.ii.61 | Murder her brothers, and then marry her – | Murther her Brothers, and then marry her, |
Richard III | R3 IV.ii.71 | Why, there thou hast it! Two deep enemies, | Why then thou hast it: two deepe enemies, |
Richard III | R3 IV.iii.26 | Beget your happiness, be happy then, | Beget your happinesse, be happy then, |
Richard III | R3 IV.iii.35.1 | Farewell till then. | Farewell till then. |
Richard III | R3 IV.iii.50 | Than Buckingham and his rash-levied strength. | Then Buckingham and his rash leuied Strength. |
Richard III | R3 IV.iii.54 | Then fiery expedition be my wing, | Then fierie expedition be my wing, |
Richard III | R3 IV.iv.33 | Then would I hide my bones, not rest them here. | Then would I hide my bones, not rest them heere, |
Richard III | R3 IV.iv.82 | I called thee then vain flourish of my fortune; | I call'd thee then, vaine flourish of my fortune: |
Richard III | R3 IV.iv.83 | I called thee then poor shadow, painted queen, | I call'd thee then, poore Shadow, painted Queen, |
Richard III | R3 IV.iv.120 | Think that thy babes were sweeter than they were | Thinke that thy Babes were sweeter then they were, |
Richard III | R3 IV.iv.121 | And he that slew them fouler than he is. | And he that slew them fowler then he is: |
Richard III | R3 IV.iv.132 | If so, then be not tongue-tied: go with me, | If so then, be not Tongue-ty'd: go with me, |
Richard III | R3 IV.iv.157 | Then patiently hear my impatience. | Then patiently heare my impatience. |
Richard III | R3 IV.iv.160.2 | Do then, but I'll not hear. | Do then, but Ile not heare. |
Richard III | R3 IV.iv.190 | Than all the complete armour that thou wearest! | Then all the compleat Armour that thou wear'st. |
Richard III | R3 IV.iv.239 | Than ever you or yours were by me harmed! | Then euer you and yours by me were harm'd. |
Richard III | R3 IV.iv.255 | Last longer telling than thy kindness' date. | Last longer telling then thy kindnesse date. |
Richard III | R3 IV.iv.256 | Then know that from my soul I love thy daughter. | Then know, That from my Soule, I loue thy Daughter. |
Richard III | R3 IV.iv.265 | Well then, who dost thou mean shall be her king? | Well then, who dost yu meane shallbe her King. |
Richard III | R3 IV.iv.273 | ‘ Edward ’ and ‘ York ’; then haply she will weep. | Edward and Yorke, then haply will she weepe: |
Richard III | R3 IV.iv.289 | Nay, then indeed she cannot choose but hate thee, | Nay then indeed she cannot choose but hate thee |
Richard III | R3 IV.iv.300 | Than is the doting title of a mother; | Then is the doting Title of a Mother; |
Richard III | R3 IV.iv.325 | Go then, my mother; to thy daughter go; | Go then (my Mother) to thy Daughter go, |
Richard III | R3 IV.iv.359 | Then plainly to tell her my loving tale. | Then plainly to her, tell my louing tale. |
Richard III | R3 IV.iv.373 | Swear then by something that thou hast not wronged. | Sweare then by something, that thou hast not wrong'd. |
Richard III | R3 IV.iv.374.1 | Then by myself – | Then by my Selfe. |
Richard III | R3 IV.iv.377.1 | Why then, by God – | Why then, by Heauen. |
Richard III | R3 IV.iv.473 | Then tell me, what makes he upon the seas? | Then tell me, what makes he vpon the Seas? |
Richard III | R3 IV.iv.479 | Where is thy power then to beat him back? | Where is thy Power then, to beat him back? |
Richard III | R3 IV.iv.494 | Go then, and muster men. But leave behind | Goe then, and muster men: but leaue behind |
Richard III | R3 V.i.12 | Why, then All Souls' Day is my body's doomsday. | Why then Al-soules day, is my bodies doomsday |
Richard III | R3 V.ii.22 | All for our vantage. Then in God's name march! | All for our vantage, then in Gods name march, |
Richard III | R3 V.iii.3 | My heart is ten times lighter than my looks. | My heart is ten times lighter then my lookes. |
Richard III | R3 V.iii.50 | What, is my beaver easier than it was? | What, is my Beauer easier then it was? |
Richard III | R3 V.iii.186 | Then fly. What, from myself? Great reason why – | Then flye; What from my Selfe? Great reason: why? |
Richard III | R3 V.iii.219 | Than can the substance of ten thousand soldiers | Then can the substance of ten thousand Souldiers |
Richard III | R3 V.iii.237 | Why, then 'tis time to arm and give direction. | Why then 'tis time to Arme, and giue direction. |
Richard III | R3 V.iii.238 | More than I have said, loving countrymen, | More then I haue said, louing Countrymen, |
Richard III | R3 V.iii.245 | Had rather have us win than him they follow. | Had rather haue vs win, then him they follow. |
Richard III | R3 V.iii.254 | Then if you fight against God's enemy, | Then if you fight against Gods Enemy, |
Richard III | R3 V.iii.264 | Then in the name of God and all these rights, | Then in the name of God and all these rights, |
Richard III | R3 V.iii.274 | He said the truth. And what said Surrey then? | He said the truth: and what said Surrey then? |
Richard III | R3 V.iii.279 | Then he disdains to shine; for by the book | Then he disdaines to shine: for by the Booke |
Richard III | R3 V.iii.287 | More than to Richmond? For the selfsame heaven | More then to Richmond? For the selfe-same Heauen |
Richard III | R3 V.iii.314 | If not to heaven, then hand in hand to hell. | If not to heauen, then hand in hand to Hell. |
Richard III | R3 V.iii.315 | What shall I say more than I have inferred? | What shall I say more then I haue inferr'd? |
Richard III | R3 V.iv.2 | The King enacts more wonders than a man, | The King enacts more wonders then a man, |
Richard III | R3 V.v.18 | And then, as we have ta'en the sacrament, | And then as we haue tane the Sacrament, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.i.2 | No. For then we should be colliers. | No, for then we should be Colliars. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.i.127 | Which then most sought where most might not be found, | Which then most sought, wher most might not be found: |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.i.176 | Why then, O brawling love, O loving hate, | Why then, O brawling loue, O louing hate, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.i.217 | Then she hath sworn that she will still live chaste? | Then she hath sworne, that she will still liue chast? |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.ii.12 | Younger than she are happy mothers made. | Younger then she, are happy mothers made. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.ii.54 | Not mad, but bound more than a madman is; | Not mad, but bound more then a mad man is: |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.ii.88 | Maintains such falsehood, then turn tears to fires; | Maintaines such falshood, then turne teares to fire: |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.ii.91 | One fairer than my love? The all-seeing sun | One fairer then my loue: the all-seeing Sun |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.iii.27 | For I had then laid wormwood to my dug, | for I had then laid Worme-wood to my Dug |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.iii.29 | My lord and you were then at Mantua. | my Lord and you were then at Mantua, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.iii.37 | For then she could stand high-lone. Nay, by th' rood, | for then she could stand alone, nay bi'th' roode |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.iii.40 | And then my husband – God be with his soul! | & then my Husband God be with his soule, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.iii.70 | Well, think of marriage now. Younger than you, | Well thinke of marriage now, yonger then you |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.iii.74 | That you are now a maid. Thus then in brief: | That you are now a Maide, thus then in briefe: |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.iii.100 | Than your consent gives strength to make it fly. | Then your consent giues strength to make flye. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.iv.53 | O, then I see Queen Mab hath been with you. | O then I see Queene Mab hath beene with you: |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.iv.55 | In shape no bigger than an agate stone | in shape no bigger then Agat-stone, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.iv.71 | Through lovers' brains, and then they dream of love; | through Louers braines: and then they dreame of Loue. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.iv.78 | And then dreams he of smelling out a suit. | & then dreames he of smelling out a sute: |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.iv.81 | Then he dreams of another benefice. | then he dreames of another Benefice. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.iv.83 | And then dreams he of cutting foreign throats, | & then dreames he of cutting Forraine throats, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.iv.85 | Of healths five fathom deep; and then anon | Of Healths fiue Fadome deepe, and then anon |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.iv.100 | And more inconstant than the wind, who woos | And more inconstant then the wind, who wooes |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.v.38 | Some five-and-twenty years; and then we masked. | Some fiue and twenty yeares, and then we Maskt. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.v.103 | O, then, dear saint, let lips do what hands do! | O then deare Saint, let lips do what hands do, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.v.106 | Then move not while my prayer's effect I take. | Then moue not while my prayers effect I take: |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.v.108 | Then have my lips the sin that they have took. | Then haue my lips the sin that they haue tooke. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.v.123 | Is it e'en so? Why then, I thank you all. | Is it e'ne so? why then I thanke you all. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.v.125 | More torches here! Come on then, let's to bed. | More Torches here: come on, then let's to bed. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.i.41.2 | Go then, for 'tis in vain | Go then, for 'tis in vaine |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.ii.6 | That thou her maid art far more fair than she. | That thou her Maid art far more faire then she: |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.ii.72 | Than twenty of their swords! Look thou but sweet, | Then twenty of their Swords, looke thou but sweete, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.ii.78 | Than death prorogued, wanting of thy love. | Then death proroged wanting of thy Loue. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.ii.101 | Than those that have more cunning to be strange. | Then those that haue coying to be strange, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.ii.162 | And make her airy tongue more hoarse than mine | And make her ayrie tongue more hoarse, then |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.ii.169 | I will not fail. 'Tis twenty years till then. | I will not faile, 'tis twenty yeares till then, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.ii.177 | And yet no farther than a wanton's bird, | And yet no further then a wantons Bird, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.iii.37 | Or if not so, then here I hit it right –, | Or if not so, then here I hit it right. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.iii.43 | That's my good son! But where hast thou been then? | That's my good Son, but wher hast thou bin then? |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.iii.53 | Then plainly know my heart's dear love is set | Then plainly know my hearts deare Loue is set, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.iii.63 | So soon forsaken? Young men's love then lies | So soone forsaken? young mens Loue then lies |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.iii.75 | And art thou changed? Pronounce this sentence then: | And art thou chang'd? pronounce this sentence then, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.iv.19 | More than Prince of Cats, I can tell you. O, | More then Prince of Cats. Oh |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.iv.59 | Why, then is my pump well-flowered. | Why then is my Pump well flowr'd. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.iv.72 | thy wits than, I am sure, I have in my whole five. Was I | thy wits, then I am sure I haue in my whole fiue. Was I |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.iv.80 | And is it not, then, well served in to a sweet | And is it not well seru'd into a Sweet- |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.iv.86 | Why, is not this better now than groaning for | Why is not this better now, then groning for |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.iv.118 | when you have found him than he was when you sought | when you haue found him, then he was when you sought |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.iv.145 | talk and will speak more in a minute than he will stand | talke, and will speake more in a minute, then he will stand |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.iv.148 | down, an 'a were lustier than he is, and twenty such | downe, & a were lustier then he is, and twentie such |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.v.5 | Which ten times faster glides than the sun's beams, | Which ten times faster glides then the Sunnes beames, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.v.34 | Is longer than the tale thou dost excuse. | Is longer then the tale thou dost excuse. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.v.40 | his face be better than any man's, yet his leg excels all | his face be better then any mans, yet his legs excels all |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.v.68 | Then hie you hence to Friar Laurence' cell. | Then high you hence to Frier Lawrence Cell, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.vi.7 | Then love-devouring death do what he dare – | Then Loue-deuouring death do what he dare, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.vi.26 | To blazon it, then sweeten with thy breath | To blason it, then sweeten with thy breath |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.vi.30 | Conceit, more rich in matter than in words, | Conceit more rich in matter then in words, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.i.18 | hair less in his beard than thou hast. Thou wilt quarrel | haire lesse in his beard, then thou hast: thou wilt quarrell |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.i.60 | No better term than this: thou art a villain. | No better terme then this: Thou art a Villaine. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.i.68 | But love thee better than thou canst devise | But lou'd thee better then thou can'st deuise: |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.i.165 | ‘ Hold, friends! Friends, part!’ and swifter than his tongue | Hold Friends, Friends part, and swifter then his tongue, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.i.169 | Of stout Mercutio, and then Tybalt fled. | Of stout Mercutio, and then Tybalt fled. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.ii.19 | Whiter than new snow upon a raven's back. | Whiter then new Snow vpon a Rauens backe: |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.ii.47 | Than the death-darting eye of cockatrice. | Then the death-darting eye of Cockatrice, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.ii.67 | Then, dreadful trumpet, sound the General Doom! | Then dreadfull Trumpet sound the generall doome, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.ii.107 | All this is comfort. Wherefore weep I then? | All this is comfort, wherefore weepe I then? |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.ii.108 | Some word there was, worser than Tybalt's death, | Some words there was worser then Tybalts death |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.iii.9 | What less than doomsday is the Prince's doom? | What lesse then Doomesday, / Is the Princes Doome? |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.iii.14 | Much more than death. Do not say ‘ banishment.’ | Much more then death: do not say banishment. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.iii.20 | And world's exile is death. Then ‘ banished ’ | And worlds exile is death. Then banished, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.iii.35 | In carrion flies than Romeo. They may seize | In carrion Flies, then Romeo: they may seaze |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.iii.53 | Thou fond mad man, hear me a little speak. | Then fond Mad man, heare me speake. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.iii.62 | O, then I see that madmen have no ears. | O then I see, that Mad men haue no eares. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.iii.69 | Then mightst thou speak; then mightst thou tear thy hair, | Then mightest thou speake, / Then mightest thou teare thy hayre, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.iii.81.2 | Welcome then. | Welcome then. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.iii.100 | And now falls on her bed, and then starts up, | And now fals on her bed, and then starts vp, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.iii.101 | And Tybalt calls, and then on Romeo cries, | And Tybalt calls, and then on Romeo cries, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.iii.102.1 | And then down falls again. | And then downe falls againe. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.iii.149 | For then thou canst not pass to Mantua, | For then thou canst not passe to Mantua, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.iii.154 | Than thou wentest forth in lamentation. | Then thou went'st forth in lamentation. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.iv.30 | Well, get you gone. A' Thursday be it, then. | Well, get you gone, a Thursday, be it then: |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.v.23 | I have more care to stay than will to go. | I haue more care to stay, then will to go: |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.v.41 | Then, window, let day in, and let life out. | Then window let day in, and let life out. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.v.63 | For then I hope thou wilt not keep him long | For then I hope thou wilt not keepe him long, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.v.88 | Then weep no more. I'll send to one in Mantua, | Then weepe no more, Ile send to one in Mantua, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.v.92 | And then I hope thou wilt be satisfied. | And then I hope thou wilt be satisfied. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.v.123 | Rather than Paris. These are news indeed! | Rather then Paris. These are newes indeed. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.v.184 | And then to have a wretched puling fool, | And then to haue a wretched puling foole, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.v.217 | Then, since the case so stands as now it doth, | Then since the case so stands as now it doth, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.i.28 | Being spoke behind your back, than to your face. | Benig spoke behind your backe, then to your face. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.i.32 | Thou wrongest it more than tears with that report. | Thou wrong'st it more then teares with that report. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.i.43 | Till then, adieu, and keep this holy kiss. | Till then adue, and keepe this holy kisse. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.i.71 | If, rather than to marry County Paris, | If rather then to marrie Countie Paris |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.i.73 | Then is it likely thou wilt undertake | Then is it likely thou wilt vndertake |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.i.77 | O bid me leap, rather than marry Paris, | Oh bid me leape, rather then marrie Paris, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.i.89 | Hold, then. Go home, be merry, give consent | Hold then: goe home, be merrie, giue consent, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.i.93 | Take thou this vial, being then in bed, | Take thou this Violl being then in bed, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.i.106 | And then awake as from a pleasant sleep. | And then awake, as from a pleasant sleepe. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.i.109 | Then, as the manner of our country is, | Then as the manner of our country is, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.iii.22 | Shall I be married then tomorrow morning? | Shall I be married then to morrow morning? |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.iii.33 | Shall I not then be stifled in the vault, | Shall I not then be stifled in the Vault? |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.v.108 | You will not then? | You will not then? |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.v.110 | I will then give it you soundly. | I will then giue it you soundly. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.v.114 | Then I will give you the | Then will I giue you the |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.v.116 | Then will I lay the serving-creature's dagger on | Then will I lay the seruing Creatures Dagger on |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.v.122 | Then have at you with my wit! I will dry-beat you | Then haue at you with my wit. / I will drie-beate you |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.v.127 | Then music with her silver sound ’ – | then Musicke with her siluer sound. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.v.140 | ‘ Then music with her silver sound | Then Musicke with her siluer sound, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.i.17 | Then she is well, and nothing can be ill. | Then she is well, and nothing can be ill. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.i.24 | Is it e'en so? Then I defy you, stars! | Is it euen so? / Then I denie you Starres. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.i.74 | Then be not poor, but break it and take this. | Then be not poore, but breake it, and take this. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.i.82 | Than these poor compounds that thou mayst not sell. | Then these poore compounds that thou maiest not sell. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.ii.13 | Who bare my letter, then, to Romeo? | Who bare my Letter then to Romeo? |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.7 | But thou shalt hear it. Whistle then to me, | But thou shalt heare it: whistle then to me, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.39 | Than empty tigers or the roaring sea. | Then emptie Tygers, or the roaring Sea. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.55 | Can vengeance be pursued further than death? | Can vengeance be pursued further then death? |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.64 | By heaven, I love thee better than myself, | By heauen I loue thee better then my selfe, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.70 | Wilt thou provoke me? Then have at thee, boy! | Wilt thou prouoke me? Then haue at thee Boy. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.99 | Than with that hand that cut thy youth in twain | Then with that hand that cut thy youth in twaine, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.135 | Stay then; I'll go alone. Fear comes upon me. | Stay, then Ile go alone, feares comes vpon me. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.153 | A greater power than we can contradict | A greater power then we can contradict |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.169 | Yea, noise? Then I'll be brief. O happy dagger! | Yea noise? Then ile be briefe. O happy Dagger. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.219 | And then will I be general of your woes | And then will I be generall of your woes, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.228 | Then say at once what thou dost know in this. | Then say at once, what thou dost know in this? |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.239 | To County Paris. Then comes she to me | To Countie Paris. Then comes she to me, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.243 | Then gave I her – so tutored by my art – | Then gaue I her (so Tutor'd by my Art) |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.252 | Returned my letter back. Then all alone | Return'd my Letter backe. Then all alone, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.262 | But then a noise did scare me from the tomb, | But then, a noyse did scarre me from the Tombe, |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.273 | And then in post he came from Mantua | And then in poste he came from Mantua |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.285 | And then I ran away to call the Watch. | And then I ran away to call the Watch. |
Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.310 | Than this of Juliet and her Romeo. | Then this of Iuliet, and her Romeo. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS induction.1.39 | Would not the beggar then forget himself? | Would not the begger then forget himselfe? |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS induction.1.43 | Then take him up, and manage well the jest. | Then take him vp, and manage well the iest: |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS induction.1.69 | He is no less than what we say he is. | He is no lesse then what we say he is. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS induction.1.116 | And then with kind embracements, tempting kisses, | And then with kinde embracements, tempting kisses, |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS induction.1.121 | No better than a poor and loathsome beggar. | No better then a poore and loathsome begger: |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS induction.2.8 | what raiment I'll wear, for I have no more doublets than | what raiment Ile weare, for I haue no more doublets then |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS induction.2.9 | backs, no more stockings than legs, nor no more shoes | backes: no more stockings then legges: nor no more shooes |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS induction.2.10 | than feet – nay, sometimes more feet than shoes, or such | then feet, nay sometime more feete then shooes, or such |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS induction.2.37 | Softer and sweeter than the lustful bed | Softer and sweeter then the lustfull bed |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS induction.2.47 | As breathed stags, ay, fleeter than the roe. | As breathed Stags: I fleeter then the Roe. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS induction.2.62 | Than any woman in this waning age. | Then any woman in this waining age. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.i.136 | his youngest free for a husband, and then have to't | his yongest free for a husband, and then haue too t |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.i.174 | Nay, then 'tis time to stir him from his trance. | Nay, then 'tis time to stirre him frõ his trance: |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.i.198 | For man or master. Then it follows thus – | For man or master: then it followes thus; |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.i.240 | When I am alone, why then I am Tranio, | When I am alone, why then I am Tranio: |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.ii.14 | And then I know after who comes by the worst. | And then I know after who comes by the worst. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.ii.35 | Then had not Grumio come by the worst. | then had not Grumio come by the worst. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.ii.50 | To seek their fortunes farther than at home, | To seeke their fortunes farther then at home, |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.ii.58 | Petruchio, shall I then come roundly to thee | Petruchio, shall I then come roundly to thee, |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.ii.75 | If wealthily, then happily in Padua. | If wealthily, then happily in Padua. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.ii.90 | That, were my state far worser than it is, | That were my state farre worser then it is, |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.ii.113 | it that she shall have no more eyes to see withal than a | it, that shee shal haue no more eies to see withall then a |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.ii.150 | For she is sweeter than perfume itself | For she is sweeter then perfume it selfe |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.ii.156 | Than you, unless you were a scholar, sir. | Then you; vnlesse you were a scholler sir. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.ii.239 | And were his daughter fairer than she is, | And were his daughter fairer then she is, |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.ii.242 | Then well one more may fair Bianca have. | Then well one more may faire Bianca haue; |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.ii.255 | And let it be more than Alcides' twelve. | And let it be more then Alcides twelue. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.ii.261 | The younger then is free, and not before. | The yonger then is free, and not before. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.12 | Which I could fancy more than any other. | Which I could fancie, more then any other. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.16 | O then, belike, you fancy riches more. | Oh then belike you fancie riches more, |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.19 | Nay then you jest, and now I well perceive | Nay then you iest, and now I wel perceiue |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.22 | If that be jest, then all the rest was so. | If that be iest, then all the rest was so. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.78 | been more kindly beholding to you than any, freely give | beene / More kindely beholding to you then any: / Freely giue |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.101 | If you accept them, then their worth is great. | If you accept them, then their worth is great: |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.112 | And then to dinner. You are passing welcome, | And then to dinner: you are passing welcome, |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.118 | Which I have bettered rather than decreased. | Which I haue bettered rather then decreast, |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.119 | Then tell me, if I get your daughter's love, | Then tell me, if I get your daughters loue, |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.147 | Why then, thou canst not break her to the lute? | Why then thou canst not break her to the Lute? |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.161 | I love her ten times more than e'er I did. | I loue her ten times more then ere I did, |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.170 | Say that she rail, why then I'll tell her plain | Say that she raile, why then Ile tell her plaine, |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.175 | Then I'll commend her volubility, | Then Ile commend her volubility, |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.211 | My remedy is then to pluck it out. | My remedy is then to plucke it out. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.221 | And if no gentleman, why then no arms. | And if no Gentleman, why then no armes. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.230.1 | Then show it me. | Then shew it me. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.249 | As hazel-nuts and sweeter than the kernels. | As hazle nuts, and sweeter then the kernels: |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.255 | And then let Kate be chaste and Dian sportful. | And then let Kate be chaste, and Dian sportfull. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.294 | Is this your speeding? Nay then, good night our part. | Is this your speeding? nay thẽ godnight our part. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.329 | Than words can witness or your thoughts can guess. | Then words can witnesse, or your thoughts can guesse. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.349 | To house or housekeeping. Then at my farm | To house or house-keeping: then at my farme |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.371 | Than three great argosies, besides two galliasses | Then three great Argosies, besides two Galliasses |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.375 | And she can have no more than all I have. | And she can haue no more then all I haue, |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.377 | Why, then the maid is mine from all the world | Why then the maid is mine from all the world |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS III.i.6 | Then give me leave to have prerogative, | Then giue me leaue to haue prerogatiue, |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS III.i.13 | Then give me leave to read philosophy, | Then giue me leaue to read Philosophy, |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS III.i.67 | Than hath been taught by any of my trade. | Then hath beene taught by any of my trade, |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS III.i.84 | Faith, mistress, then I have no cause to stay. | Faith Mistresse then I haue no cause to stay. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS III.ii.37 | What then? | What then? |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS III.ii.82 | Is more than one, | is more then one, |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS III.ii.134 | Of greater sums than I have promised. | Of greater summes then I haue promised, |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS III.ii.153 | Curster than she? Why, 'tis impossible. | Curster then she, why 'tis impossible. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS III.ii.191 | You would entreat me rather go than stay. | You would intreat me rather goe then stay: |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS III.ii.206 | Nay then, | Nay then, |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.i.9 | the weather, a taller man than I will take cold. | the weather, a taller man then I will take cold: |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.i.161 | Than feed it with such overroasted flesh. | Then feede it with such ouer-rosted flesh: |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.i.178 | For then she never looks upon her lure. | For then she neuer lookes vpon her lure. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.ii.49.2 | Then we are rid of Licio. | Then we are rid of Lisio. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.ii.71 | Take in your love, and then let me alone. | Take me your loue, and then let me alone. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.ii.75 | But then up farther, and as far as Rome, | But then vp farther, and as farre as Rome, |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.ii.88 | Alas, sir, it is worse for me than so! | Alas sir, it is worse for me then so, |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.ii.115 | Then go with me to make the matter good. | Then go with me, to make the matter good, |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iii.11 | And that which spites me more than all these wants, | And that which spights me more then all these wants, |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iii.26 | Why then, the beef, and let the mustard rest. | Why then the Beefe, and let the Mustard rest. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iii.27 | Nay then, I will not. You shall have the mustard, | Nay then I wil not, you shal haue the Mustard |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iii.29 | Then both, or one, or anything thou wilt. | Then both or one, or any thing thou wilt. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iii.30 | Why then, the mustard without the beef. | Why then the Mustard without the beefe. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iii.42 | What, not a word? Nay, then, thou lov'st it not, | What, not a word? Nay then, thou lou'st it not: |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iii.72.1 | And not till then. | And not till then. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iii.79 | And rather than it shall, I will be free | And rather then it shall, I will be free, |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iii.149 | God-a-mercy, Grumio, then he shall have no | God-a-mercie Grumio, then hee shall haue no |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iii.157 | O sir, the conceit is deeper than you think for. | Oh sir, the conceit is deeper then you think for: |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iii.171 | What, is the jay more precious than the lark | What is the Iay more precious then the Larke? |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iii.173 | Or is the adder better than the eel | Or is the Adder better then the Eele, |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iv.33 | No worse than I, upon some agreement | No worse then I, vpon some agreement |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iv.43 | And therefore if you say no more than this, | And therefore if you say no more then this, |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iv.48 | I thank you, sir. Where then do you know best | I thanke you sir, where then doe you know best |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iv.55 | Then at my lodging, an it like you. | Then at my lodging, and it like you, |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iv.79 | Then thus – Baptista is safe, talking with the | Then thus: Baptista is safe talking with the |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iv.84 | And then? | And then. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iv.102 | She will be pleased, then wherefore should I doubt? | She will be pleas'd, then wherefore should I doubt: |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.v.17 | Nay, then you lie. It is the blessed sun. | Nay then you lye: it is the blessed Sunne. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.v.18 | Then, God be blessed, it is the blessed sun. | Then God be blest, it in the blessed sun, |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.v.79 | Then hast thou taught Hortensio to be untoward. | Then hast thou taught Hortentio to be vntoward. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS V.i.5 | and then come back to my master's as soon as I can. | and then come backe to my mistris as soone as I can. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS V.i.94 | Then thou wert best say that I am not Lucentio. | Then thou wert best saie that I am not Lucentio. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS V.i.118 | Then pardon him, sweet father, for my sake. | Then pardon him sweete Father for my sake. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS V.i.136 | Why, then, let's home again. | Why then let's home againe: |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS V.i.141 | Better once than never, for never too late. | Better once then neuer, for neuer to late. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS V.ii.17 | Then never trust me if I be afeard. | Then neuer trust me if I be affeard. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS V.ii.47 | And then pursue me as you draw your bow. | And then pursue me as you draw your Bow. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS V.ii.74.1 | A hundred then. | A hundred then. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS V.ii.87.1 | Nay, then she must needs come. | nay then shee must needes come. |
The Taming of the Shrew | TS V.ii.175 | Then vail your stomachs, for it is no boot, | Then vale your stomackes, for it is no boote, |
The Tempest | Tem I.i.20 | None that I more love than myself. You are | None that I more loue then my selfe. You are |
The Tempest | Tem I.i.36 | A plague upon this howling! They are louder than the | A plague --- vpon this howling: they are lowder then the |
The Tempest | Tem I.i.42 | Work you, then. | Worke you then. |
The Tempest | Tem I.i.44 | We are less afraid to be drowned than thou art. | we are lesse afraid to be drownde, then thou art. |
The Tempest | Tem I.i.46 | were no stronger than a nutshell and as leaky as an | were no stronger then a Nutt-shell, and as leaky as an |
The Tempest | Tem I.ii.20 | Than Prospero, master of a full poor cell, | Then Prospero, Master of a full poore cell, |
The Tempest | Tem I.ii.40 | I do not think thou canst, for then thou wast not | I doe not thinke thou canst, for then thou was't not |
The Tempest | Tem I.ii.45 | And rather like a dream than an assurance | And rather like a dreame, then an assurance |
The Tempest | Tem I.ii.117 | Mark his condition and th' event; then tell me | Marke his condition, and th' euent, then tell me |
The Tempest | Tem I.ii.133 | I, not remembering how I cried out then, | I not remembring how I cride out then |
The Tempest | Tem I.ii.136 | And then I'll bring thee to the present business | And then I'le bring thee to the present businesse |
The Tempest | Tem I.ii.152.1 | Was I then to you! | Was I then to you? |
The Tempest | Tem I.ii.162 | Out of his charity, who being then appointed | Out of his Charity, (who being then appointed |
The Tempest | Tem I.ii.173 | Than other princess can, that have more time | Then other Princesse can, that haue more time |
The Tempest | Tem I.ii.201 | Then meet and join. Jove's lightnings, the precursors | Then meete, and ioyne. Ioues Lightning, the precursers |
The Tempest | Tem I.ii.212 | Then all afire with me. The King's son Ferdinand, | Then all a fire with me the Kings sonne Ferdinand |
The Tempest | Tem I.ii.213 | With hair upstaring – then like reeds, not hair – | With haire vp-staring (then like reeds, not haire) |
The Tempest | Tem I.ii.219 | But fresher than before; and as thou bad'st me, | But fresher then before: and as thou badst me, |
The Tempest | Tem I.ii.271 | As thou report'st thyself, wast then her servant. | As thou reportst thy selfe, was then her seruant, |
The Tempest | Tem I.ii.281 | As fast as millwheels strike. Then was this island – | As fast as Mill-wheeles strike: Then was this Island |
The Tempest | Tem I.ii.330.1 | Than bees that made 'em. | Then Bees that made 'em. |
The Tempest | Tem I.ii.336 | That burn by day and night. And then I loved thee, | That burne by day, and night: and then I lou'd thee |
The Tempest | Tem I.ii.362 | Deserved more than a prison. | Deseru'd more then a prison. |
The Tempest | Tem I.ii.376 | And then take hands. | and then take hands: |
The Tempest | Tem I.ii.483 | Are then most humble. I have no ambition | Are then most humble: I haue no ambition |
The Tempest | Tem I.ii.498 | Than he appears by speech. This is unwonted | Then he appeares by speech: this is vnwonted |
The Tempest | Tem I.ii.500 | As mountain winds; but then exactly do | As mountaine windes; but then exactly do |
The Tempest | Tem II.i.8 | Can speak like us. Then wisely, good sir, weigh | Can speake like vs: then wisely (good Sir) weigh |
The Tempest | Tem II.i.22 | truer than you purposed. | truer then you purpos'd. |
The Tempest | Tem II.i.23 | You have taken it wiselier than I meant you | You haue taken it wiselier then I meant you |
The Tempest | Tem II.i.66 | freshness and glosses, being rather new-dyed than | freshnesse and glosses, being rather new dy'de then |
The Tempest | Tem II.i.88 | His word is more than the miraculous harp. | His word is more then the miraculous Harpe. |
The Tempest | Tem II.i.136 | Than we bring men to comfort them. | Then we bring men to comfort them: |
The Tempest | Tem II.i.188 | We would so, and then go a-bat-fowling. | We would so, and then go a Bat-fowling. |
The Tempest | Tem II.i.204 | Doth it not then our eyelids sink? I find | Doth it not then our eye-lids sinke? I finde |
The Tempest | Tem II.i.223 | I am more serious than my custom. You | I am more serious then my custome: you |
The Tempest | Tem II.i.248.3 | Then, tell me, | Then tell me, |
The Tempest | Tem II.i.267 | Than now they are. There be that can rule Naples | Then now they are: There be that can rule Naples |
The Tempest | Tem II.i.278 | Much feater than before. My brother's servants | Much feater then before: My Brothers seruants |
The Tempest | Tem II.i.279 | Were then my fellows. Now they are my men. | Were then my fellowes, now they are my men. |
The Tempest | Tem II.i.286 | No better than the earth he lies upon, | No better then the earth he lies vpon, |
The Tempest | Tem II.i.311.1 | Then let us both be sudden. | Then let vs both be sodaine. |
The Tempest | Tem II.ii.10 | And after bite me; then like hedgehogs, which | And after bite me: then like Hedg-hogs, which |
The Tempest | Tem II.ii.45.1 | He drinks and then sings | Drinkes. Sings. |
The Tempest | Tem II.ii.53 | Then to sea, boys, and let her go hang! | Then to Sea Boyes, and let her goe hang. |
The Tempest | Tem II.ii.124 | Here! Swear, then, how thou escaped'st. | Heere: sweare then how thou escap'dst. |
The Tempest | Tem II.ii.150 | Come on then. Down, and swear! | Come on then: downe and sweare. |
The Tempest | Tem III.i.8 | Ten times more gentle than her father's crabbed, | Ten times more gentle, then her Father's crabbed; |
The Tempest | Tem III.i.27 | Than you should such dishonour undergo, | Then you should such dishonor vndergoe, |
The Tempest | Tem III.i.51 | More that I may call men than you, good friend, | More that I may call men, then you good friend, |
The Tempest | Tem III.i.62 | This wooden slavery than to suffer | This wodden slauerie, then to suffer |
The Tempest | Tem III.i.87.2 | My husband, then? | My husband then? |
The Tempest | Tem III.ii.51 | Mum, then, and no more. Proceed! | Mum then, and no more: proceed. |
The Tempest | Tem III.ii.115.1 | Wilt thou destroy him then? | Wilt thou destroy him then? |
The Tempest | Tem III.ii.140 | That, if I then had waked after long sleep, | That if I then had wak'd after long sleepe, |
The Tempest | Tem III.ii.141 | Will make me sleep again; and then, in dreaming, | Will make me sleepe againe, and then in dreaming, |
The Tempest | Tem III.iii.33 | Their manners are more gentle, kind, than of | Their manners are more gentle, kinde, then of |
The Tempest | Tem III.iii.37.1 | Are worse than devils. | Are worse then diuels. |
The Tempest | Tem III.iii.78 | Lingering perdition – worse than any death | Lingring perdition (worse then any death |
The Tempest | Tem III.iii.84.1 | He vanishes in thunder. Then, to soft music, enter the | He vanishes in Thunder: then (to soft Musicke.) Enter the |
The Tempest | Tem III.iii.103 | I'll seek him deeper than e'er plummet sounded, | I'le seeke him deeper then ere plummet sounded, |
The Tempest | Tem IV.i.13 | Then, as my gift, and thine own acquisition | Then, as my guest, and thine owne acquisition |
The Tempest | Tem IV.i.32 | Sit then and talk with her: she is thine own. | Sit then, and talke with her, she is thine owne; |
The Tempest | Tem IV.i.58 | Rather than want a spirit. Appear, and pertly. | Rather then want a Spirit; appear, & pertly. |
The Tempest | Tem IV.i.175 | Towards their project. Then I beat my tabor, | Towards their proiect: then I beate my Tabor, |
The Tempest | Tem IV.i.197 | fairy, has done little better than played the Jack | Fairy, / Has done little better then plaid the Iacke |
The Tempest | Tem IV.i.211 | That's more to me than my wetting. Yet this | That's more to me then my wetting: / Yet this |
The Tempest | Tem IV.i.262.1 | Than pard or cat o' mountain. | Then Pard, or Cat o' Mountaine. |
The Tempest | Tem V.i.24 | Passion as they, be kindlier moved than thou art? | Passion as they, be kindlier mou'd then thou art? |
The Tempest | Tem V.i.28 | In virtue than in vengeance. They being penitent, | In vertue, then in vengeance: they, being penitent, |
The Tempest | Tem V.i.56 | And deeper than did ever plummet sound | And deeper then did euer Plummet sound |
The Tempest | Tem V.i.58.2 | Here enters Ariel before; then Alonso with a frantic | Heere enters Ariel before: Then Alonso with a franticke |
The Tempest | Tem V.i.147 | Than you may call to comfort you, for I | Then you may call to comfort you; for I |
The Tempest | Tem V.i.243 | And there is in this business more than nature | And there is in this businesse, more then nature |
The Tempest | Tem V.i.268 | Then say if they be true. This misshapen knave, | Then say if they be true: This mishapen knaue; |
The Tempest | Tem V.i.289 | I should have been a sore one, then. | I should haue bin a sore one then. |
The Tempest | Tem V.i.318 | That is thy charge. Then to the elements | That is thy charge: Then to the Elements |
Timon of Athens | Tim I.i.39 | Lives in these touches livelier than life. | Liues in these toutches, liuelier then life. |
Timon of Athens | Tim I.i.62 | Than to abhor himself – even he drops down | Then to abhorre himselfe; euen hee drops downe |
Timon of Athens | Tim I.i.82 | Some better than his value – on the moment | Some better then his valew; on the moment |
Timon of Athens | Tim I.i.95 | More pregnantly than words. Yet you do well | More pregnantly then words. Yet you do well, |
Timon of Athens | Tim I.i.124.1 | Than one which holds a trencher. | Then one which holds a Trencher. |
Timon of Athens | Tim I.i.188 | Then I repent not. | Then I repent not. |
Timon of Athens | Tim I.i.222 | Then I lie not. | Then I lye not. |
Timon of Athens | Tim I.i.225 | Then thou liest. Look in thy last work, | Then thou lyest: / Looke in thy last worke, |
Timon of Athens | Tim I.i.231 | What wouldst do then, Apemantus? | What wouldst do then Apemantus? |
Timon of Athens | Tim I.ii.1.2 | in; Flavius and others attending; and then enter | in: and then, Enter |
Timon of Athens | Tim I.ii.1.5 | prison. Then comes, dropping after all, Apemantus, | prison. Then comes dropping after all Apemantus |
Timon of Athens | Tim I.ii.4 | Then, as in grateful virtue I am bound | Then, as in gratefull Vertue I am bound |
Timon of Athens | Tim I.ii.19 | Than my fortunes to me. | Then my Fortunes to me. |
Timon of Athens | Tim I.ii.74 | You had rather be at a breakfast of enemies than | You had rather be at a breakefast of Enemies, then |
Timon of Athens | Tim I.ii.80 | enemies then, that then thou mightst kill 'em – and bid | Enemies then, that then thou might'st kill 'em: & bid |
Timon of Athens | Tim I.ii.91 | to myself than you can with modesty speak in your own | to my selfe, then you can with modestie speake in your owne |
Timon of Athens | Tim I.ii.100 | better or properer can we call our own than the riches of | better or properer can we call our owne, then the riches of |
Timon of Athens | Tim I.ii.159 | When all's spent, he'd be crossed then, an he could. | When all's spent, hee'ld be crost then, and he could: |
Timon of Athens | Tim I.ii.177 | Near? Why then, another time I'll hear thee. I | Neere? why then another time Ile heare thee. I |
Timon of Athens | Tim I.ii.203 | Than such that do e'en enemies exceed. | Then such that do e'ne Enemies exceede. |
Timon of Athens | Tim I.ii.208 | With more than common thanks I will receive it. | With more then common thankes / I will receyue it. |
Timon of Athens | Tim I.ii.244 | too, there would be none left to rail upon thee, and then | too, there would be none left to raile vpon thee, and then |
Timon of Athens | Tim I.ii.252 | not then. I'll lock thy heaven from thee. | not then. Ile locke thy heauen from thee: |
Timon of Athens | Tim II.i.8 | Better than he, why, give my horse to Timon, | Better then he; why giue my Horse to Timon. |
Timon of Athens | Tim II.i.17 | With slight denial, nor then silenced when | With slight deniall; nor then silenc'd, when |
Timon of Athens | Tim II.ii.85 | There will little learning die then, that | There will litle Learning dye then that |
Timon of Athens | Tim II.ii.107 | Do it then, that we may account thee a | Do it then, that we may account thee a |
Timon of Athens | Tim III.i.55 | It turns in less than two nights? O you gods! | It turnes in lesse then two nights? O you Gods! |
Timon of Athens | Tim III.iii.23 | I'd rather than the worth of thrice the sum | I'de rather then the worth of thrice the summe, |
Timon of Athens | Tim III.iv.1.3 | of Timon's creditors, waiting for his coming out | Then enter Lucius and Hortensius. |
Timon of Athens | Tim III.iv.24 | Timon in this should pay more than he owes; | Timon in this, should pay more then he owes: |
Timon of Athens | Tim III.iv.29 | And now ingratitude makes it worse than stealth. | And now Ingratitude, makes it worse then stealth. |
Timon of Athens | Tim III.iv.50 | Why then preferred you not your sums and bills | Why then preferr'd you not your summes and Billes |
Timon of Athens | Tim III.iv.52 | Then they could smile and fawn upon his debts, | Then they could smile, and fawne vpon his debts, |
Timon of Athens | Tim III.iv.64 | and that's revenge enough. Who can speak broader than | and that's reuenge enough. Who can speake broader, then |
Timon of Athens | Tim III.v.41 | My lords, then, under favour – pardon me, | My Lords, then vnder fauour, pardon me, |
Timon of Athens | Tim III.v.48 | Abroad? Why then women are more valiant | Abroad? Why then, Women are more valiant |
Timon of Athens | Tim III.v.50 | And the ass more captain than the lion, | And the Asse, more Captaine then the Lyon? |
Timon of Athens | Tim III.v.51 | The fellow loaden with irons wiser than the judge, | The fellow loaden with Irons, wiser then the Iudge? |
Timon of Athens | Tim III.v.107 | I'm worse than mad. I have kept back their foes, | I'm worse then mad: I haue kept backe their Foes |
Timon of Athens | Tim III.vi.31 | than we your lordship. | then we your Lordship. |
Timon of Athens | Tim III.vi.76 | the gods. Make the meat be beloved more than the man that | the Gods. Make the Meate be beloued, more then the Man that |
Timon of Athens | Tim IV.i.9 | Rather than render back, out with your knives | Rather then render backe; out with your Kniues, |
Timon of Athens | Tim IV.i.36 | Th' unkindest beast more kinder than mankind. | Th'vnkindest Beast, more kinder then Mankinde. |
Timon of Athens | Tim IV.ii.40 | Who then dares to be half so kind again? | Who then dares to be halfe so kinde agen? |
Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.58 | I know thee too, and more than that I know thee | I know thee too, and more then that I know thee |
Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.62 | Then what should war be? This fell whore of thine | Then what should warre be? This fell whore of thine, |
Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.63 | Hath in her more destruction than thy sword, | Hath in her more destruction then thy Sword, |
Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.65 | I will not kiss thee; then the rot returns | I will not kisse thee, then the rot returnes |
Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.69 | But then renew I could not like the moon; | But then renew I could not like the Moone, |
Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.79 | I see them now. Then was a blessed time. | I see them now, then was a blessed time. |
Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.150.2 | Well, more gold. What then? | Well, more Gold, what then? |
Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.201 | 'Tis, then, because thou dost not keep a dog, | 'Tis then, because thou dost not keepe a dogge |
Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.234 | I love thee better now than e'er I did. | I loue thee better now, then ere I did. |
Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.248 | Worse than the worst, content. | Worse then the worst, Content. |
Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.263 | At duty, more than I could frame employment; | At duty more then I could frame employment; |
Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.358 | be welcome. I had rather be a beggar's dog than | be welcome. / I had rather be a Beggers Dogge, / Then |
Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.379 | Then, Timon, presently prepare thy grave. | Then Timon presently prepare thy graue: |
Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.399 | More things like men! Eat, Timon, and abhor them. | Mo things like men, / Eate Timon, and abhorre then. |
Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.435 | More than you rob. Take wealth and lives together. | Moe then you Rob: Take wealth, and liues together, |
Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.466 | What viler thing upon the earth than friends, | What vilder thing vpon the earth, then Friends, |
Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.471 | Those that would mischief me than those that do! | Those that would mischeefe me, then those that doo. |
Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.477 | Then, if thou grantest th' art a man, I have forgot thee. | Then, if thou grunt'st, th'art a man. / I haue forgot thee. |
Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.479 | Then I know thee not. | Then I know thee not: |
Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.484 | For his undone lord than mine eyes for you. | For his vndone Lord, then mine eyes for you. |
Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.485 | What, dost thou weep? Come nearer. Then I love thee, | What, dost thou weepe? / Come neerer, then I loue thee |
Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.505 | Methinks thou art more honest now than wise. | Me thinkes thou art more honest now, then wise: |
Timon of Athens | Tim V.i.9 | Then this breaking of his has been but a try for his | Then this breaking of his, / Ha's beene but a Try for his |
Timon of Athens | Tim V.i.39 | Then do we sin against our own estate, | Then do we sinne against our owne estate, |
Timon of Athens | Tim V.i.47 | Than where swine feed! | then where Swine feede? |
Timon of Athens | Tim V.i.109 | But where one villain is, then him abandon. | But where one Villaine is, then him abandon. |
Timon of Athens | Tim V.i.149 | Than their offence can weigh down by the dram – | Then their offence can weigh downe by the Dramme, |
Timon of Athens | Tim V.i.173 | Then let him know – and tell him Timon speaks it | Then let him know, and tell him Timon speakes it, |
Timon of Athens | Tim V.iv.38 | Are not inherited. Then, dear countryman, | Are not inherited, then deere Countryman, |
Timon of Athens | Tim V.iv.46.1 | Than hew to't with thy sword. | Then hew too't, with thy Sword. |
Timon of Athens | Tim V.iv.54.2 | Then there's my glove. | Then there's my Gloue, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.1.2 | then enter below Saturninus and his followers at one | then enter Saturninus and his Followers at one |
Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.7 | Then let my father's honours live in me, | Then let my Fathers Honours liue in me, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.12 | Keep then this passage to the Capitol, | Keepe then this passage to the Capitoll: |
Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.73.1 | Sound drums and trumpets. Then enter two of Titus's | Sound Drummes and Trumpets. And then enter two of Titus |
Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.73.2 | sons, Martius and Mutius, then two men bearing a | Sonnes; After them, two men bearing a |
Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.73.3 | Coffin covered with black, then two other sons, Lucius | Coffin couered with blacke, then two other Sonnes. |
Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.73.4 | and Quintus, then Titus Andronicus, and then | After them, Titus Andronicus, and then |
Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.73.7 | and others as many as can be. Then set down the coffin, | and others, as many as can bee: They set downe the Coffin, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.121 | Draw near them then in being merciful; | Draw neere them then in being mercifull. |
Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.138 | Then, madam, stand resolved; but hope withal | Then Madam stand resolu'd, but hope withall, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.153 | Sound trumpets, and lay the coffin in the tomb | Flourish. Then Sound Trumpets, and lay the Coffins in the Tombe. |
Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.188 | Be candidatus then and put it on, | Be Candidatus then, and put it on, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.191 | Than his that shakes for age and feebleness. | Then his that shakes for age and feeblenesse: |
Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.210 | Rather than rob me of the people's hearts. | Rather then rob me of the peoples harts. |
Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.231 | Then if you will elect by my advice, | Then if you will elect by my aduise, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.254 | Receive them then, the tribute that I owe, | Receiue them then, the Tribute that I owe, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.272 | Can make you greater than the Queen of Goths. | Can make your Greater then the Queene of Gothes? |
Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.280 | How, sir? Are you in earnest then, my lord? | How sir? Are you in earnest then my Lord? |
Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.295 | My lord, you are unjust, and more than so, | My Lord you are vniust, and more then so, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.376 | Renowned Titus, more than half my soul – | Renowned Titus more then halfe my soule. |
Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.385 | Let not young Mutius then, that was thy joy, | Let not young Mutius then that was thy ioy, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.399 | Is she not then beholden to the man | Is she not then beholding to the man, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.424 | Receive him then to favour, Saturnine, | Receiue him then to fauour Saturnine, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.433 | Then hear me speak indifferently for all, | Then heare me speake indifferently for all: |
Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.442 | Then at my suit look graciously on him; | Then at my sute looke graciously on him, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.448 | Lest then the people, and patricians too, | Least then the people, and Patricians too, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.452 | Yield at entreats, and then let me alone: | Yeeld at intreats, and then let me alone: |
Titus Andronicus | Tit II.i.12 | Then, Aaron, arm thy heart and fit thy thoughts | Then Aaron arme thy hart, and fit thy thoughts, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit II.i.17 | Than is Prometheus tied to Caucasus. | Then is Prometheus ti'de to Caucasus. |
Titus Andronicus | Tit II.i.65 | What, is Lavinia then become so loose, | What is Lauinia then become so loose, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit II.i.72 | I love Lavinia more than all the world. | I loue Lauinia more then all the world. |
Titus Andronicus | Tit II.i.86 | Than wots the miller of, and easy it is | Then wots the Miller of, and easie it is |
Titus Andronicus | Tit II.i.89 | Better than he have worn Vulcan's badge. | Better then he haue worne Vulcans badge. |
Titus Andronicus | Tit II.i.91 | Then why should he despair that knows to court it | Then why should he dispaire that knowes to court it |
Titus Andronicus | Tit II.i.95 | Why then, it seems some certain snatch or so | Why then it seemes some certaine snatch or so |
Titus Andronicus | Tit II.i.98 | Then should not we be tired with this ado. | Then should not we be tir'd with this adoo: |
Titus Andronicus | Tit II.i.100 | To square for this? Would it offend you then | To square for this? Would it offend you then? |
Titus Andronicus | Tit II.i.109 | Than this Lavinia, Bassianus' love. | Then this Lauinia, Bassianus loue, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit II.i.117 | Single you thither then this dainty doe, | Single you thither then this dainty Doe, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit II.ii.11.1 | Here a cry of hounds and wind horns in a peal; | Winde Hornes. Heere a cry of houndes, and winde hornes in a peale, then |
Titus Andronicus | Tit II.ii.11.2 | then enter Saturninus, Tamora, Bassianus, Lavinia, | Enter Saturninus, Tamora, Bassianus, Lauinia, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit II.ii.18 | Come on then, horse and chariots let us have, | Come on then, horse and Chariots letvs haue, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit II.iii.41 | Which never hopes more heaven than rests in thee, | Which neuer hopes more heauen, then rests in thee, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit II.iii.51 | Ah, my sweet Moor, sweeter to me than life! | Ah my sweet Moore: / Sweeter to me then life. |
Titus Andronicus | Tit II.iii.109 | And then they called me foul adulteress, | And then they call'd me foule Adulteresse, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit II.iii.123 | First thrash the corn, then after burn the straw. | First thrash the Corne, then after burne the straw: |
Titus Andronicus | Tit II.iii.172 | What begg'st thou then, fond woman? Let me go! | What beg'st thou then? fond woman let me go? |
Titus Andronicus | Tit II.iii.175 | O, keep me from their worse-than-killing lust, | Oh keepe me from their worse then killing lust, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit II.iii.184.2 | Nay then, I'll stop your mouth. | Nay then Ile stop your mouth |
Titus Andronicus | Tit II.iii.213 | My heart suspects more than mine eye can see. | My heart suspects more then mine eie can see. |
Titus Andronicus | Tit II.iii.264 | Then all too late I bring this fatal writ, | Then all too late I bring this fatall writ, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit II.iii.302 | For, by my soul, were there worse end than death, | For by my soule, were there worse end then death, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit II.iv.43 | That could have better sewed than Philomel. | That could haue better sowed then Philomel. |
Titus Andronicus | Tit II.iv.47 | He would not then have touched them for his life. | He would not then haue toucht them for his life. |
Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.18 | Than youthful April shall with all his showers. | Then youthfull Aprill shall with all his showres |
Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.39 | Yet in some sort they are better than the tribunes, | Yet in some sort they are better then the Tribunes, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.45 | A stone is soft as wax, tribunes, more hard than stones. | A stone is as soft waxe, / Tribunes more hard then stones: |
Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.56 | But me and mine; how happy art thou then | But me and and mine: how happy art thou then, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.62 | Will it consume me? Let me see it then. | Will it consume me? Let me see it then. |
Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.92 | Hath hurt me more than had he killed me dead. | Hath hurt me more, then had he kild me dead: |
Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.102 | Is dear Lavinia, dearer than my soul. | Is deere Lauinia, deerer then my soule. |
Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.111 | When I did name her brothers, then fresh tears | When I did name her brothers, then fresh teares |
Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.116 | If they did kill thy husband, then be joyful, | If they did kill thy husband then be ioyfull, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.165 | My youth can better spare my blood than you | My youth can better spare my blood then you, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.173 | Then have I kept it to a worthy end. | Then haue I kept it to a worthy end. |
Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.184.1 | Then I'll go fetch an axe. | Then Ile goe fetch an Axe. |
Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.209 | Do then, dear heart, for heaven shall hear our prayers, | Doe then deare heart, for heauen shall heare our prayers, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.216 | Then be my passions bottomless with them. | Then be my passions bottomlesse with them. |
Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.219 | Then into limits could I bind my woes. | Then into limits could I binde my woes: |
Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.226 | Then must my sea be moved with her sighs, | Then must my Sea be moued with her sighes, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.227 | Then must my earth with her continual tears | Then must my earth with her continuall teares, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.231 | Then give me leave, for losers will have leave | Then giue me leaue, for loosers will haue leaue, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.239 | More than remembrance of my father's death. | More then remembrance of my fathers death. |
Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.242 | These miseries are more than may be borne. | These miseries are more then may be borne. |
Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.269 | Then which way shall I find Revenge's cave? | Then which way shall I finde Reuenges Caue? |
Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.290 | He loves his pledges dearer than his life. | Heloues his pledges dearer then his life: |
Titus Andronicus | Tit III.ii.2 | Than will preserve just so much strength in us | Then will preserue iust so much strength in vs |
Titus Andronicus | Tit III.ii.11 | Then thus (striking his breast) I thump it down. | Then thus I thumpe it downe. |
Titus Andronicus | Tit III.ii.69 | Then pardon me for reprehending thee, | Then pardon me for reprehending thee, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.i.13 | Read to her sons than she hath read to thee | Read to her sonnes, then she hath read to thee, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.i.38 | I think she means that there were more than one | I thinke she meanes that ther was more then one |
Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.i.95 | But if you hunt these bear-whelps, then beware: | But if you hunt these Beare-whelpes, then beware |
Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.i.105 | And where's our lesson then? Boy, what say you? | And wheres your lesson then. Boy what say you? |
Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.i.127 | Than foemen's marks upon his battered shield, | Then foe-mens markes vpon his batter'd shield, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.ii.33 | Led us to Rome, strangers, and more than so, | Led vs to Rome strangers, and more then so; |
Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.ii.64.2 | Why then, she is the devil's dam: | Why then she is the Deuils Dam: |
Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.ii.82 | What, must it, nurse? Then let no man but I | What, must it Nurse? Then let no man but I |
Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.ii.98 | Coal-black is better than another hue, | Cole-blacke is better then another hue, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.ii.131 | Then sit we down and let us all consult. | Then sit we downe and let vs all consult. |
Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.ii.167 | Then let the ladies tattle what they please. | Then let the Ladies tattle what they please. |
Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.iii.13 | Then, when you come to Pluto's region, | Then when you come to Plutoes Region, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.iii.24 | And, kinsmen, then we may go pipe for justice. | And kinsmen then we may goe pipe for iustice. |
Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.iii.49 | Yet wrung with wrongs more than our backs can bear. | Yet wrung with wrongs more then our backe can beare: |
Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.iii.108 | Then here is a supplication for you, | Then here is a Supplication for you, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.iii.110 | must kneel, then kiss his foot, then deliver up your | must kneele, then kisse his foote, then deliuer vp your |
Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.iii.111 | pigeons, and then look for your reward. I'll be at hand, | Pigeons, and then looke for your reward. Ile be at hand |
Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.iv.33 | Than prosecute the meanest or the best | Then prosecute the meanest or the best |
Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.iv.38 | Then is all safe, the anchor in the port. | Then is all safe, the Anchor's in the Port. |
Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.iv.48 | Hanged, by' Lady? Then I have brought up a neck | Hang'd? berLady, then I haue brought vp a neck |
Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.iv.88 | Then cheer thy spirit; for know thou, Emperor, | Then cheare thy spirit, for know thou Emperour, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.iv.91 | Than baits to fish, or honey-stalks to sheep, | Then baites to fish, or honystalkes to sheepe, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.iv.95 | If Tamora entreat him, then he will, | If Tamora entreat him, then he will, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.iv.113 | Then go incessantly, and plead to him. | Then goe successantly and plead for him. |
Titus Andronicus | Tit V.i.70 | Swear that he shall, and then I will begin. | Sweare that he shall, and then I will begin. |
Titus Andronicus | Tit V.ii.48 | And then I'll come and be thy waggoner, | And then Ile come and be thy Waggoner, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit V.ii.175 | Than hands or tongue, her spotless chastity, | Then Hands or tongue, her spotlesse Chastity, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit V.ii.193 | For worse than Philomel you used my daughter, | For worse then Philomel you vsd my Daughter, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit V.ii.194 | And worse than Procne I will be revenged. | And worse then Progne, I will be reueng'd, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit V.ii.202 | More stern and bloody than the Centaurs' feast. | More sterne and bloody then the Centaures Feast. |
Titus Andronicus | Tit V.iii.17 | What, hath the firmament more suns than one? | What, hath the Firemament more Suns then one? |
Titus Andronicus | Tit V.iii.50 | And have a thousand times more cause than he | And haue a thousand times more cause then he. |
Titus Andronicus | Tit V.iii.95 | Then, gracious auditory, be it known to you | This Noble Auditory, be it knowne to you, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit V.iii.126 | Or more than any living man could bear. | Or more then any liuing man could beare. |
Titus Andronicus | Tit V.iii.165 | And talk of them when he was dead and gone. | In that respect then, like a louing Childe, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit V.iii.186 | Ten thousand worse than ever yet I did | Ten thousand worse, then euer yet I did, |
Titus Andronicus | Tit V.iii.199 | And being dead, let birds on her take pity. | And being so, shall haue like want of pitty. / See Iustice done on Aaron that damn'd Moore, / From whom, our heauy happes had their beginning: / Then afterwards, to Order well the State, / That like Euents, may ne're it Ruinate. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.i.9 | But I am weaker than a woman's tear, | But I am weaker then a womans teare; |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.i.10 | Tamer than sleep, fonder than ignorance, | Tamer then sleepe, fonder then ignorance; |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.i.11 | Less valiant than the virgin in the night, | Lesse valiant then the Virgin in the night, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.i.30 | Doth lesser blench at sufferance than I do. | Doth lesser blench at sufferance, then I doe: |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.i.33 | So, traitor! – ‘ when she comes ’? – when is she thence? | So (Traitor) then she comes, when she is thence. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.i.34 | Well, she looked yesternight fairer than ever | Well: / She look'd yesternight fairer, then euer |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.i.43 | An her hair were not somewhat darker than | And her haire were not somewhat darker then |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.i.65 | I speak no more than truth. | I speake no more then truth. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.i.118.2 | Come, go we then together. | Come goe wee then togither. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.67 | Then you say as I say, for I am sure he is not | Then you say as I say, / For I am sure he is not |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.80 | were in her body. No, Hector is not a better man than | were in her body; no, Hector is not a better man then |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.102 | Then Troilus should have too much. If she | Then Troylus should haue too much, if she |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.103 | praised him above, his complexion is higher than his; | prasi'd him aboue, his complexion is higher then his, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.109 | than Paris. | then Paris. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.110 | Then she's a merry Greek indeed. | Then shee's a merry Greeke indeed. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.123 | smiling becomes him better than any man in all | smyling becomes him better then any man in all |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.128 | Why, go to, then: but to prove to you that | Why go to then, but to proue to you that |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.132 | Troilus? Why, he esteems her no more than | Troylus? why he esteemes her no more then |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.233 | bloodied, and his helm more hacked than Hector's, | bloudied, and his Helme more hackt then Hectors, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.245 | be such a man as Troilus than Agamemnon and all | be such a man as Troylus, then Agamemnon, and all |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.248 | man than Troilus. | man then Troylus. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.256 | Ay, a minced man; and then to be baked with | I, a minc'd man, and then to be bak'd with |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.257 | no date in the pie, for then the man's date is out. | no Date in the pye, for then the mans dates out. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.269 | blow – unless it swell past hiding, and then it's past | blow, vnlesse it swell past hiding, and then it's past |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.285 | Than in the glass of Pandar's praise may be. | Then in the glasse of Pandar's praise may be; |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.289 | Men prize the thing ungained more than it is. | Men prize the thing vngain'd, more then it is. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.294 | Then, though my heart's content firm love doth bear, | That though my hearts Contents firme loue doth beare, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.17 | That gave't surmised shape. Why then, you princes, | That gaue't surmised shape. Why then (you Princes) |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.23 | In fortune's love: for then the bold and coward, | In Fortunes loue: for then, the Bold and Coward, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.42 | Like Perseus' horse. Where's then the saucy boat, | Like Perseus Horse. Where's then the sawcy Boate, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.49 | Than by the tiger; but when the splitting wind | Then by the Tyger: But, when the splitting winde |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.51 | And flies fled under shade, why then the thing of courage, | And Flies fled vnder shade, why then / The thing of Courage, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.72 | Divide thy lips than we are confident | Diuide thy lips; then we are confident |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.103 | Then enterprise is sick. How could communities, | The enterprize is sicke. How could Communities, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.112 | Should lift their bosoms higher than the shores, | Should lift their bosomes higher then the Shores, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.119 | Then everything includes itself in power, | Then euery thing includes it selfe in Power, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.172 | And then, forsooth, the faint defects of age | And then (forsooth) the faint defects of Age |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.220 | With surety stronger than Achilles' arm | With surety stronger then Achilles arme, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.253.1 | And then to speak. | And then to speake. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.266 | That holds his honour higher than his ease, | That holds his Honor higher then his ease, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.267 | That seeks his praise more than he fears his peril, | That seekes his praise, more then he feares his perill, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.269 | That loves his mistress more than in confession | That loues his Mistris more then in consession, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.272 | In other arms than hers; to him this challenge: | In other armes then hers: to him this Challenge. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.276 | Than ever Greek did compass in his arms; | Then euer Greeke did compasse in his armes, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.289 | If then one is, or hath, or means to be, | If then one is, or hath, or meanes to be, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.299 | Was fairer than his grandam, and as chaste | Was fayrer then his Grandame, and as chaste |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.355 | In no less working than are swords and bows | In no lesse working, then are Swords and Bowes |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.371 | Than in the pride and salt scorn of his eyes | Then in the pride and salt scorne of his eyes |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.373 | Why then we did our main opinion crush | Why then we did our maine opinion crush |
Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.380 | His crest that prouder than blue Iris bends. | His Crest, that prouder then blew Iris bends. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.i.6 | the general run then? Were not that a botchy core? | the General run, were not that a botchy core? |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.i.8 | Then there would come some matter from | Then there would come some matter from |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.i.11 | then. | then. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.i.14 | Speak, then, thou vinewed'st leaven, speak; I will | Speake then you whinid'st leauen speake, I will |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.i.17 | but I think thy horse will sooner con an oration than | but I thinke thy Horse wil sooner con an Oration, then |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.i.43 | hast no more brain than I have in mine elbows; an | hast no more braine then I haue in mine elbows: An |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.i.69 | his brain more than he has beat my bones. I will buy | his Braine more then he has beate my bones: I will buy |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.ii.8 | Though no man lesser fears the Greeks than I | Though no man lesser feares the Greeks then I, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.ii.14 | Than Hector is. The wound of peace is surety, | Then Hector is: the wound of peace is surety, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.ii.42 | Who marvels, then, when Helenus beholds | Who maruels then when Helenus beholds |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.ii.58 | To make the service greater than the god; | To make the seruice greater then the God, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.ii.93 | Richer than sea and land? O, theft most base, | Richer then Sea and Land? O Theft most base! |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.ii.121 | Such and no other than event doth form it, | Such, and no other then euent doth forme it, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.ii.127 | I am no more touched than all Priam's sons; | I am no more touch'd, then all Priams sonnes, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.ii.161 | Where Helen is the subject. Then, I say, | Where Helen is the subiect. Then (I say) |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.ii.171 | Than to make up a free determination | Then to make vp a free determination |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.ii.173 | Have ears more deaf than adders to the voice | Haue eares more deafe then Adders, to the voyce |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.ii.177 | Than wife is to the husband? If this law | Then Wife is to the Husband? If this law |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.ii.184 | If Helen then be wife to Sparta's king, | If Helen then be wife to Sparta's King |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.ii.197 | Than the performance of our heaving spleens, | Then the performance of our heauing spleenes, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.iii.7 | spiteful execrations. Then there's Achilles – a rare | spitefull execrations. Then ther's Achilles, a rare |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.iii.13 | that little little, less than little wit from them that they | that little little lesse then little wit from them that they |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.iii.30 | direction till thy death; then if she that lays thee out | direction till thy death, then if she that laies thee out |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.iii.43 | Thy commander, Achilles. Then tell me, | Thy Commander Achilles, then tell me |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.iii.45 | Thy lord, Thersites. Then tell me, I pray | Thy Lord Thersites: then tell me I pray |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.iii.47 | Thy knower, Patroclus. Then tell me, Patroclus, | Thy knower Patroclus: then tell me Patroclus, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.iii.94 | Then will Ajax lack matter, if he have lost his | Then will Aiax lacke matter, if he haue lost his |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.iii.99 | than their faction; but it was a strong composure a fool | then their faction; but it was a strong counsell that a Foole |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.iii.107 | If anything more than your sport and pleasure | If any thing more then your sport and pleasure, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.iii.124 | Than in the note of judgement; and worthier than himself | Then in the note of iudgement: & worthier then himselfe |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.iii.141 | What is he more than another? | What is he more then another? |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.iii.142 | No more than what he thinks he is. | No more then what he thinkes he is. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.iii.144 | better man than I am? | a better man then I am? |
Troilus and Cressida | TC II.iii.187 | Of that we hold an idol more than he? | Of that we hold an Idoll, more then hee? |
Troilus and Cressida | TC III.i.149 | Shall more obey than to the edge of steel | Shall more obey then to the edge of Steele, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC III.i.151 | Than all the island kings – disarm great Hector. | Then all the Iland Kings, disarme great Hector. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC III.i.154 | Gives us more palm in beauty than we have, | Giues vs more palme in beautie then we haue: |
Troilus and Cressida | TC III.ii.34 | My heart beats thicker than a feverous pulse, | My heart beates thicker then a feauorous pulse, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC III.ii.66 | More dregs than water, if my fears have eyes. | More dregs then water, if my teares haue eyes. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC III.ii.70 | safer footing than blind reason stumbling without fear: | safe footing, then blinde reason, stumbling without feare: |
Troilus and Cressida | TC III.ii.78 | enough than for us to undergo any difficulty imposed. | inough, then for vs to vndergoe any difficultie imposed. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC III.ii.83 | than they are able, and yet reserve an ability that they | then they are able, and yet reserue an ability that they |
Troilus and Cressida | TC III.ii.84 | never perform; vowing more than the perfection of | neuer performe: vowing more then the perfection of |
Troilus and Cressida | TC III.ii.85 | ten, and discharging less than the tenth part of one. | ten; and discharging lesse then the tenth part of one. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC III.ii.96 | than Troilus. | then Troylus. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC III.ii.114 | Why was my Cressid then so hard to win? | Why was my Cressid then so hard to win? |
Troilus and Cressida | TC III.ii.151 | Perchance, my lord, I show more craft than love, | Perchance my Lord, I shew more craft then loue, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC III.ii.161 | That doth renew swifter than blood decays! | That doth renew swifter then blood decaies: |
Troilus and Cressida | TC III.ii.166 | How were I then uplifted! But alas, | How were I then vp-lifted! but alas, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC III.ii.168 | And simpler than the infancy of truth. | And simpler then the infancie of truth. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC III.iii.54 | Than if not looked on. I will lead the way. | Then if not lookt on. I will lead the way. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC III.iii.155 | Where one but goes abreast. Keep then the path, | Where one but goes a breast, keepe then the path: |
Troilus and Cressida | TC III.iii.163 | O'errun and trampled on. Then what they do in present, | Ore-run and trampled on: then what they doe in present, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC III.iii.164 | Though less than yours in past, must o'ertop yours; | Though lesse then yours in past, must ore-top yours: |
Troilus and Cressida | TC III.iii.179 | More laud than gilt o'erdusted. | More laud then guilt oredusted. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC III.iii.181 | Then marvel not, thou great and complete man, | Then maruell not thou great and compleat man, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC III.iii.184 | Than what stirs not. The cry went once on thee, | Then what not stirs: the cry went out on thee, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC III.iii.204 | Than breath or pen can give expressure to. | Then breath or pen can giue expressure to: |
Troilus and Cressida | TC III.iii.208 | To throw down Hector than Polyxena. | To throw downe Hector then Polixena. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC III.iii.218 | Is not more loathed than an effeminate man | Is not more loth'd, then an effeminate man, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC III.iii.228.2 | O, then, beware; | O then beware: |
Troilus and Cressida | TC III.iii.233 | Even then when we sit idly in the sun. | Euen then when we sit idely in the sunne. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC III.iii.312 | tick in a sheep than such a valiant ignorance. | Ticke in a Sheepe, then such a valiant ignorance. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.i.48.1 | Than Cressid borne from Troy. | Then Cressid borne from Troy. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.ii.2 | Then, sweet my lord, I'll call mine uncle down; | Then sweet my Lord, Ile call mine Vnckle down; |
Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.ii.6.2 | Good morrow, then. | Good morrow then. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.ii.14 | With wings more momentary-swift than thought. | With wings more momentary, swift then thought: |
Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.ii.18 | And then you would have tarried! – Hark, there's one up. | And then you would haue tarried. Harke, ther's one vp? |
Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.ii.26 | You bring me to do – and then you flout me too. | You bring me to doo----and then you floute me too. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.ii.51 | Is he here, say you? 'Tis more than I know, | Is he here say you? 'tis more then I know, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.ii.54 | Whoa! Nay, then! Come, come, you'll do him | Who, nay then: Come, come, youle doe him |
Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.iv.25 | More bright in zeal than the devotion which | More bright in zeale, then the deuotion which |
Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.iv.54.1 | I must, then, to the Grecians? | I must then to the Grecians? |
Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.iv.82 | Die I a villain then! | Dye I a villaine then: |
Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.v.38 | The kiss you take is better than you give; | The kisse you take is better then you giue: |
Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.v.48.3 | Why, beg then. | Why begge then? |
Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.v.49 | Why then, for Venus' sake, give me a kiss – | Why then for Venus sake, giue me a kisse: |
Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.v.52 | Never's my day, and then a kiss of you. | Neuer's my day, and then a kisse of you. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.v.87 | A maiden battle, then? – O, I perceive you. | A maiden battaile then? O I perceiue you. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.v.107 | Is more vindicative than jealous love. | Is more vindecatiue then iealous loue. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.v.119.2 | Why, then will I no more. | Why then will I no more: |
Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.v.217 | Sir, I foretold you then what would ensue. | Sir, I foretold you then what would ensue, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.v.240 | But there's more in me than thou understand'st. | But there's more in me then thou vnderstand'st. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC V.i.27 | No! Why art thou then exasperate, thou idle | No? why art thou then exasperate, thou idle, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC V.i.86 | leers than I will a serpent when he hisses. He will | leeres, then I will a Serpent when he hisses: he will |
Troilus and Cressida | TC V.i.91 | word. I will rather leave to see Hector than not to dog | word. I will rather leaue to see Hector, then not to dogge |
Troilus and Cressida | TC V.ii.15 | Nay, but do, then, | Nay, but doe then; |
Troilus and Cressida | TC V.ii.21 | Nay then – | Nay then. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC V.ii.58 | But will you, then? | But will you then? |
Troilus and Cressida | TC V.ii.92 | 'Twas one's that loved me better than you will. | 'Twas one that lou'd me better then you will. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC V.ii.101.2 | Why then, farewell; | Why then farewell, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC V.ii.108.1 | Farewell till then. | Farewell till then. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC V.ii.113 | What error leads must err – O, then conclude, | What errour leads, must erre: O then conclude, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC V.ii.117.3 | Why stay we then? | Why stay we then? |
Troilus and Cressida | TC V.ii.152 | Divides more wider than the sky and earth; | Diuides more wider then the skie and earth: |
Troilus and Cressida | TC V.ii.178 | In his descent than shall my prompted sword | In his discent; then shall my prompted sword, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC V.ii.197 | than he for a commodious drab. Lechery, lechery, still | then he for a commodious drab: Lechery, lechery, still |
Troilus and Cressida | TC V.iii.18 | Than spotted livers in the sacrifice. | Then spotted Liuers in the sacrifice. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC V.iii.28 | Holds honour far more precious-dear than life. | Holds honor farre more precious, deere, then life. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC V.iii.38 | Which better fits a lion than a man. | Which better fits a Lyon, then a man. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC V.iii.49.2 | Hector, then 'tis wars. | Hector, then 'tis warres. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC V.iv.14 | Achilles; and now is the cur Ajax prouder than the cur | Achilles. And now is the curre Aiax prouder then the curre |
Troilus and Cressida | TC V.v.23 | Before the belching whale; then is he yonder, | Before the belching Whale; then is he yonder, |
Troilus and Cressida | TC V.vi.31 | Why then, fly on; I'll hunt thee for thy hide. | Why then flye on, Ile hunt thee for thy hide. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC V.vii.9.1 | Enter Menelaus and Paris, fighting; then Thersites | Enter Thersites, Menelaus, and Paris. |
Troilus and Cressida | TC V.x.56 | Till then I'll sweat, and seek about for eases, | Till then, Ile sweate, and seeke about for eases; |
Twelfth Night | TN I.ii.29 | He was a bachelor then. | He was a Batchellor then. |
Twelfth Night | TN I.ii.32 | And then 'twas fresh in murmur – as you know, | And then 'twas fresh in murmure (as you know |
Twelfth Night | TN I.ii.37 | That died some twelvemonth since, then leaving her | That dide some tweluemonth since, then leauing her |
Twelfth Night | TN I.ii.64 | When my tongue blabs, then let mine eyes not see. | When my tongue blabs, then let mine eyes not see. |
Twelfth Night | TN I.iii.9 | Confine! I'll confine myself no finer than I am. | Confine? Ile confine my selfe no finer then I am: |
Twelfth Night | TN I.iii.81 | more wit than a Christian or an ordinary man has; but I | more wit then a Christian, or an ordinary man ha's: but I |
Twelfth Night | TN I.iii.92 | Then hadst thou had an excellent head of hair. | Then hadst thou had an excellent head of haire. |
Twelfth Night | TN I.iv.22 | Rather than make unprofited return. | Rather then make vnprofited returne, |
Twelfth Night | TN I.iv.23 | Say I do speak with her, my lord, what then? | Say I do speake with her (my Lord) what then? |
Twelfth Night | TN I.iv.24 | O, then unfold the passion of my love. | O then, vnfold the passion of my loue, |
Twelfth Night | TN I.iv.28 | Than in a nuncio's of more grave aspect. | Then in a Nuntio's of more graue aspect. |
Twelfth Night | TN I.v.20 | You are resolute, then? | You are resolute then? |
Twelfth Night | TN I.v.33 | than a foolish wit.’ God bless thee, lady! | then a foolish wit. God blesse thee Lady. |
Twelfth Night | TN I.v.39 | will amend. For give the dry fool drink, then is the fool | wil amend: for giue the dry foole drink, then is the foole |
Twelfth Night | TN I.v.80 | ordinary fool that has no more brain than a stone. Look | ordinary foole, that has no more braine then a stone. Looke |
Twelfth Night | TN I.v.84 | fools, no better than the fools' zanies. | fooles, no better then the fooles Zanies. |
Twelfth Night | TN I.v.171 | I can say little more than I have studied, and that | I can say little more then I haue studied, & that |
Twelfth Night | TN I.v.183 | speech in your praise, and then show you the heart of | speech in your praise, and then shew you the heart of |
Twelfth Night | TN I.v.190 | approach rather to wonder at you than to hear you. If | approach rather to wonder at you, then to heare you. If |
Twelfth Night | TN II.i.14 | then, Antonio, my name is Sebastian which I called | then Antonio, my name is Sebastian (which I call'd |
Twelfth Night | TN II.iii.7 | To be up after midnight and to go to bed then is early; | To be vp after midnight, and to go to bed then is early: |
Twelfth Night | TN II.iii.19 | I had rather than forty shillings I had such a leg, and so | I had rather then forty shillings I had such a legge, and so |
Twelfth Night | TN II.iii.49 | Then come kiss me, sweet and twenty, | Then come kisse me sweet and twentie: |
Twelfth Night | TN II.iii.111 | more than a steward? Dost thou think, because thou art | more then a Steward? Dost thou thinke because thou art |
Twelfth Night | TN II.iii.118 | at anything more than contempt, you would not give | at any thing more then contempt, you would not giue |
Twelfth Night | TN II.iii.123 | man's a-hungry, to challenge him the field and then to | mans a hungrie, to challenge him the field, and then to |
Twelfth Night | TN II.iv.5 | More than light airs and recollected terms | More then light ayres, and recollected termes |
Twelfth Night | TN II.iv.27 | She is not worth thee, then. What years, i'faith? | She is not worth thee then. What yeares ifaith? |
Twelfth Night | TN II.iv.30 | An elder than herself; so wears she to him; | An elder then her selfe, so weares she to him; |
Twelfth Night | TN II.iv.35.1 | Than women's are. | Then womens are. |
Twelfth Night | TN II.iv.36 | Then let thy love be younger than thyself, | Then let thy Loue be yonger then thy selfe, |
Twelfth Night | TN II.iv.68 | I'll pay thy pleasure, then. | Ile pay thy pleasure then. |
Twelfth Night | TN II.iv.80 | Tell her my love, more noble than the world, | Tell her my loue, more noble then the world |
Twelfth Night | TN II.iv.91 | You tell her so. Must she not then be answered? | You tel her so: Must she not then be answer'd? |
Twelfth Night | TN II.iv.116 | Our shows are more than will; for still we prove | Our shewes are more then will: for still we proue |
Twelfth Night | TN II.v.27 | exalted respect than anyone else that follows her. What | exalted respect, then any one else that followes her. What |
Twelfth Night | TN II.v.51 | And then to have the humour of state; and | And then to haue the humor of state: and |
Twelfth Night | TN II.v.68 | then? | then? |
Twelfth Night | TN II.v.126 | M! But then there is no consonancy in the | M. But then there is no consonancy in the |
Twelfth Night | TN II.v.131 | And then I comes behind. | And then I. comes behind. |
Twelfth Night | TN II.v.133 | see more detraction at your heels than fortunes before | see more detraction at your heeles, then Fortunes before |
Twelfth Night | TN II.v.190 | If you will then see the fruits of the sport, mark | If you will then see the fruites of the sport, mark |
Twelfth Night | TN III.i.77 | My legs do better under-stand me, sir, than I | My legges do better vnderstand me sir, then I |
Twelfth Night | TN III.i.101 | Would they were blanks rather than filled with me. | Would they were blankes, rather then fill'd with me. |
Twelfth Night | TN III.i.107.1 | Than music from the spheres. | Then Musicke from the spheares. |
Twelfth Night | TN III.i.123 | Why, then, methinks 'tis time to smile again. | Why then me thinkes 'tis time to smile agen: |
Twelfth Night | TN III.i.126 | To fall before the lion than the wolf! | To fall before the Lion, then the Wolfe? |
Twelfth Night | TN III.i.131.2 | Then westward ho! | Then Westward hoe: |
Twelfth Night | TN III.i.138 | Then think you right; I am not what I am. | Then thinke you right: I am not what I am. |
Twelfth Night | TN III.i.140 | Would it be better, madam, than I am? | Would it be better Madam, then I am? |
Twelfth Night | TN III.i.145 | Than love that would seem hid: love's night is noon. | Then loue that would seeme hid: Loues night, is noone. |
Twelfth Night | TN III.ii.5 | the Count's servingman than ever she bestowed upon | the Counts Seruing-man, then euer she bestow'd vpon |
Twelfth Night | TN III.ii.20 | should then have accosted her, and with some excellent | should then haue accosted her, and with some excellent |
Twelfth Night | TN III.ii.31 | Why then, build me thy fortunes upon the basis | Why then build me thy fortunes vpon the basis |
Twelfth Night | TN III.ii.36 | woman than report of valour. | woman, then report of valour. |
Twelfth Night | TN III.ii.56 | Never trust me then – and by all means stir on | Neuer trust me then: and by all meanes stirre on |
Twelfth Night | TN III.ii.75 | lines than is in the new map with the augmentation of | lynes, then is in the new Mappe, with the augmentation of |
Twelfth Night | TN III.iii.5 | More sharp than filed steel, did spur me forth, | (More sharpe then filed steele) did spurre me forth, |
Twelfth Night | TN III.iii.38.2 | Do not then walk too open. | Do not then walke too open. |
Twelfth Night | TN III.iv.3 | For youth is bought more oft than begged or borrowed. | For youth is bought more oft, then begg'd, or borrow'd. |
Twelfth Night | TN III.iv.66 | man than Sir Toby to look to me! This concurs directly | man then sir Toby to looke to me. This concurres directly |
Twelfth Night | TN III.iv.104 | I live. My lady would not lose him, for more than I'll | I liue. My Lady would not loose him for more then ile |
Twelfth Night | TN III.iv.178 | more approbation than ever proof itself would have | more approbation, then euer proofe it selfe would haue |
Twelfth Night | TN III.iv.265 | had rather go with Sir Priest than Sir Knight; I care not | had rather go with sir Priest, then sir knight: I care not |
Twelfth Night | TN III.iv.308 | Than you have heard him brag to you he will. | Then you haue heard him brag to you he will. |
Twelfth Night | TN III.iv.328 | Than what befalls myself. You stand amazed; | Then what befals my selfe: you stand amaz'd, |
Twelfth Night | TN III.iv.346 | Than lying, vainness, babbling drunkenness, | Then lying, vainnesse, babling drunkennesse, |
Twelfth Night | TN III.iv.377 | coward than a hare. His dishonesty appears in leaving | coward then a Hare, his dishonesty appeares, in leauing |
Twelfth Night | TN IV.i.42 | What, what! Nay, then, I must have an ounce | What, what? Nay then I must haue an Ounce |
Twelfth Night | TN IV.ii.43 | ignorance, in which thou art more puzzled than the | ignorance, in which thou art more puzel'd then the |
Twelfth Night | TN IV.ii.47 | was never man thus abused. I am no more mad than you | was neuer man thus abus'd, I am no more madde then you |
Twelfth Night | TN IV.ii.89 | But as well? Then you are mad indeed, if you be | But as well: then you are mad indeede, if you be |
Twelfth Night | TN IV.ii.90 | no better in your wits than a fool. | no better in your wits then a foole. |
Twelfth Night | TN IV.ii.112 | lady. It shall advantage thee more than ever the bearing | Lady: it shall aduantage thee more, then euer the bearing |
Twelfth Night | TN IV.iii.4 | Yet 'tis not madness. Where's Antonio, then? | Yet 'tis not madnesse. Where's Anthonio then, |
Twelfth Night | TN IV.iii.34 | Then lead the way, good father, and heavens so shine | Then lead the way good father, & heauens so shine, |
Twelfth Night | TN V.i.21 | why then, the worse for my friends and the better | why then the worse for my friends, and the better |
Twelfth Night | TN V.i.133 | More than I love these eyes, more than my life, | More then I loue these eyes, more then my life, |
Twelfth Night | TN V.i.134 | More by all mores than e'er I shall love wife. | More by all mores, then ere I shall loue wife. |
Twelfth Night | TN V.i.147 | Be that thou know'st thou art, and then thou art | Be that thou know'st thou art, and then thou art |
Twelfth Night | TN V.i.175 | your help! I had rather than forty pound I were at home. | your helpe, I had rather then forty pound I were at home. |
Twelfth Night | TN V.i.191 | othergates than he did. | other gates then he did. |
Twelfth Night | TN V.i.197 | Then he's a rogue and a passy-measures pavin. | Then he's a Rogue, and a passy measures panyn: |
Twelfth Night | TN V.i.221 | Than these two creatures. Which is Sebastian? | Then these two creatures. Which is Sebastian? |
Twelfth Night | TN V.i.287 | Look, then, to be well edified when the fool | Looke then to be well edified, when the Foole |
Twelfth Night | TN V.i.332 | You can say none of this. Well, grant it then, | You can say none of this. Well, grant it then, |
Twelfth Night | TN V.i.347 | First told me thou wast mad; then, camest in smiling, | First told me thou wast mad; then cam'st in smiling, |
Twelfth Night | TN V.i.364 | May rather pluck on laughter than revenge, | May rather plucke on laughter then reuenge, |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG I.i.7 | Than, living dully sluggardized at home, | Then (liuing dully sluggardiz'd at home) |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG I.i.24 | For he was more than overshoes in love. | For he was more then ouer-shooes in loue. |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG I.i.33 | If lost, why then a grievous labour won; | If lost, why then a grieuous labour won; |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG I.i.72 | Twenty to one then he is shipped already, | Twenty to one then, he is ship'd already, |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG I.i.76 | You conclude that my master is a shepherd then, | You conclude that my Master is a Shepheard then, |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG I.i.79 | Why then, my horns are his horns, whether I wake | Why then my hornes are his hornes, whether I wake |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG I.i.105 | Nay, sir, less than a pound shall serve me for | Nay Sir, lesse then a pound shall serue me for |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG I.ii.2 | Wouldst thou then counsel me to fall in love? | Would'st thou then counsaile me to fall in loue? |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG I.ii.21 | Then thus: of many good, I think him best. | Then thus: of many good, I thinke him best. |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG I.ii.48 | To plead for love deserves more fee than hate. | To plead for loue, deserues more fee, then hate. |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG I.ii.72 | Why didst thou stoop then? | Why didst thou stoope then? |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG I.ii.76 | Then let it lie for those that it concerns. | Then let it lye, for those that it concernes. |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG I.ii.85 | Heavy? Belike it hath some burden then? | Heauy? belike it hath some burden then? |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG I.iii.24 | Then tell me, whither were I best to send him? | Then tell me, whether were I best to send him? |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.i.2 | Why then, this may be yours, for this is but one. | Why then this may be yours: for this is but one. |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.i.70 | What should I see then? | What should I see then? |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.i.74 | Belike, boy, then you are in love; for last | Belike (boy) then you are in loue, for last |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.i.125 | If it please me, madam, what then? | If it please me, (Madam?) what then? |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.ii.6 | Why, then, we'll make exchange; here, take you this. | Why then wee'll make exchange; / Here, take you this. |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.ii.15 | That tide will stay me longer than I should. | That tide will stay me longer then I should, |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.ii.18 | For truth hath better deeds than words to grace it. | For truth hath better deeds, then words to grace it. |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.iii.10 | and has no more pity in him than a dog. A Jew | and has no more pitty in him then a dogge: a Iew |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.iv.6 | Of my mistress, then. | Of my Mistresse then. |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.iv.21 | Well, then, I'll double your folly. | Well then, Ile double your folly. |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.iv.26 | That hath more mind to feed on your blood than | That hath more minde to feed on your bloud, then |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.iv.81 | Welcome him then according to his worth. | Welcome him then according to his worth: |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.iv.91 | Nay, then, he should be blind; and, being blind, | Nay then he should be blind, and being blind |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.iv.149 | Then speak the truth by her; if not divine, | Then speake the truth by her; if not diuine, |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.iv.165.2 | Then let her alone. | Then let her alone. |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.iv.187 | And then I'll presently attend you. | And then Ile presently attend you. |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.v.15 | How then? Shall he marry her? | How then? shall he marry her? |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.v.19 | Why, then, how stands the matter with them? | Why then, how stands the matter with them? |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.v.33 | The conclusion is, then, that it will. | The conclusion is then, that it will. |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.v.39 | Than how? | Then how? |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.vi.23 | I to myself am dearer than a friend, | I to my selfe am deerer then a friend, |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.vii.33 | Then let me go, and hinder not my course. | Then let me goe, and hinder not my course: |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.vii.44 | Why then, your ladyship must cut your hair. | Why then your Ladiship must cut your haire. |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.vii.48 | Of greater time than I shall show to be. | Of greater time then I shall shew to be. |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.vii.62 | If you think so, then stay at home and go not. | If you thinke so, then stay at home, and go not. |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.vii.64 | Then never dream on infamy, but go. | Then neuer dreame on Infamy, but go: |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.19 | Than, by concealing it, heap on your head | Then (by concealing it) heap on your head |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.58 | Nay then, no matter; stay with me awhile; | Nay then no matter: stay with me a while, |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.78 | Then let her beauty be her wedding-dower; | Then let her beauty be her wedding dowre: |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.91 | More than quick words do move a woman's mind. | More then quicke words, doe moue a womans minde. |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.110 | Why then, I would resort to her by night. | Why then I would resort to her by night. |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.117 | Why then, a ladder, quaintly made of cords, | Why then a Ladder quaintly made of Cords |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.132.2 | Then let me see thy cloak; | Then let me see thy cloake, |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.159 | And think my patience, more than thy desert, | And thinke my patience, (more then thy desert) |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.161 | Thank me for this more than for all the favours | Thanke me for this, more then for all the fauors |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.164 | Longer than swiftest expedition | Longer then swiftest expedition |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.170 | And why not death, rather than living torment? | And why not death, rather then liuing torment? |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.195 | Who then? His spirit? | Who then? his Spirit? |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.197 | What then? | What then? |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.207 | Then in dumb silence will I bury mine, | Then in dumbe silence will I bury mine, |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.269 | serves for wages. She hath more qualities than a | serues for wages. Shee hath more qualities then a |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.274 | than a jade. Item: She can milk. Look you, a sweet | then a Iade. Item. She can milke, looke you, a sweet |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.280 | news, then, in your paper? | newes then in your paper? |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.304 | A special virtue; for then she need not be | A speciall vertue: for then shee neede not be |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.307 | Then may I set the world on wheels, when she | Then may I set the world on wheeles, when she |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.343 | Item: She hath more hair than wit, and more faults | Item, shee hath more haire then wit, and more faults |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.344 | than hairs, and more wealth than faults. | then haires, and more wealth then faults. |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.348 | Item: She hath more hair than wit – | Item, she hath more haire then wit. |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.349 | More hair than wit? It may be I'll prove it: the | More haire then wit: it may be ile proue it: The |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.351 | than the salt; the hair that covers the wit is more than | then the salt; the haire that couers the wit, is more then |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.353 | And more faults than hairs – | And more faults then haires. |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.355 | And more wealth than faults. | And more wealth then faults. |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.359 | What then? | What then? |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.360 | Why, then will I tell thee – that thy master stays | Why then, will I tell thee, that thy Master staies |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.364 | a better man than thee. | a better man then thee. |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.ii.20 | Longer than I prove loyal to your grace | Longer then I proue loyall to your Grace, |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.ii.38 | Then you must undertake to slander him. | Then you must vndertake to slander him. |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG IV.i.11 | Then know that I have little wealth to lose; | Then know that I haue little wealth to loose; |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG IV.i.44 | Know then that some of us are gentlemen, | Know then, that some of vs are Gentlemen, |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG IV.ii.48 | Then to Silvia let us sing | Then to Siluia, let vs sing, |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG IV.ii.53 | How now? Are you sadder than you were before? | How now? are you sadder then you were before; |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG IV.iv.13 | If I had not had more wit than he, to take a fault upon | If I had not had more wit then he, to take a fault vpon |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG IV.iv.53 | the hangman boys in the market-place; and then I | the Hangmans boyes in the market place, / And then I |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG IV.iv.117 | Would better fit his chamber than this shadow. | Would better fit his Chamber, then this Shadow. |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG IV.iv.146 | She hath been fairer, madam, than she is. | She hath bin fairer (Madam) then she is, |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.ii.2 | O, sir, I find her milder than she was; | Oh Sir, I finde her milder then she was, |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.ii.10 | Nay then, the wanton lies; my face is black. | Nay then the wanton lyes: my face is blacke. |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.ii.14 | For I had rather wink than look on them. | For I had rather winke, then looke on them. |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.ii.34 | Why then, | Why then |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.ii.52 | Than for the love of reckless Silvia. | Then for the loue of reck-lesse Siluia. |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.ii.54 | Than hate of Eglamour, that goes with her. | Then hate of Eglamoure that goes with her. |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.ii.56 | Than hate for Silvia, that is gone for love. | Then hate for Siluia, that is gone for loue. |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.iii.3 | A thousand more mischances than this one | A thousand more mischances then this one |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.iv.3 | I better brook than flourishing peopled towns. | I better brooke then flourishing peopled Townes: |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.iv.24 | A smaller boon than this I cannot beg, | (A smaller boone then this I cannot beg, |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.iv.25 | And less than this, I am sure, you cannot give. | And lesse then this, I am sure you cannot giue.) |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.iv.35 | Rather than have false Proteus rescue me. | Rather then haue false Protheus reskue me: |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.iv.47 | For whose dear sake thou didst then rend thy faith | For whose deare sake, thou didst then rend thy faith |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.iv.51 | And that's far worse than none; better have none | And that's farre worse then none: better haue none |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.iv.52 | Than plural faith, which is too much by one. | Then plurall faith, which is too much by one: |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.iv.77.2 | Then I am paid; | Then I am paid: |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.iv.110 | Women to change their shapes than men their minds. | Women to change their shapes, then men their minds. |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.iv.111 | Than men their minds? 'Tis true. O heaven, were man | Then men their minds? tis true: oh heuen, were man |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.iv.143 | Know, then, I here forget all former griefs, | Know then, I heere forget all former greefes, |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.iv.167 | I warrant you, my lord – more grace than boy. | I warrant you (my Lord) more grace, then Boy. |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.i.1.4 | bearing a wheaten garland; then Theseus between two | bearing a wheaten Garland. Then Theseus betweene two |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.i.1.6 | then Hippolyta the bride, led by Pirithous, and another | Then Hipolita the Bride, lead by Theseus, and another |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.i.1.9 | then Artesius and attendants | The Song, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.i.63 | Not Juno's mantle fairer then your tresses, | Not Iunos Mantle fairer then your Tresses, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.i.65 | Was then nor threshed nor blasted; Fortune at you | Was then nor threashd, nor blasted; Fortune at you |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.i.67 | Then weaker than your eyes – laid by his club; | (Then weaker than your eies) laide by his Club, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.i.88 | Then ever he had on thee, who owest his strength | Then ever he had on thee, who ow'st his strength, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.i.98 | Then a dove's motion when the head's plucked off; | Then a Doves motion, when the head's pluckt off: |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.i.132 | Will longer last and be more costly than | Will long last, and be more costly then, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.i.136 | Than others' laboured meditance, your premeditating | Then others laboured meditance: your premeditating |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.i.137 | More than their actions. But O Jove, your actions, | More then their actions: But oh Iove, your actions |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.i.153 | Then, bootless toil must recompense itself | Then, booteles toyle must recompence it selfe, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.i.172 | Greater than any war; it more imports me | Greater then any was; it more imports me |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.i.173 | Than all the actions that I have foregone | Then all the actions that I have foregone, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.i.185 | Thou shalt remember nothing more than what | Thou shalt remember nothing more, then what |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.ii.1 | Dear Palamon, dearer in love than blood | Deere Palamon, deerer in love then Blood |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.ii.19 | By peace for whom he fought; who then shall offer | By peace for whom he fought, who then shall offer |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.ii.26.1 | Than strife or war could be. | Then strife, or war could be. |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.iii.22 | The brine they wept at killing 'em; then if | The brine, they wept at killing 'em; Then if |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.iii.25 | As I pursue this war, which shall be then | As I pursue this war, which shall be then |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.iii.53 | Which then looked pale at parting – when our count | (which then lookt pale at parting) when our count |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.iii.65 | Was then of me approved, what not, condemned, | Was then of me approov'd, what not condemd |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.iii.67 | And put between my breasts – O, then but beginning | And put betweene my breasts, oh (then but beginning |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.iii.82.1 | More than in sex dividual. | More then in sex individuall. |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.iii.89 | Than I will trust a sickly appetite | Then I will trust a sickely appetite, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.iii.95 | That we, more than his Pirithous, possess | That we, more then his Pirothous, possesse |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.iv.1.1.1 | Cornets. A battle struck within; then a retreat. | Cornets. A Battaile strooke withim: Then a Retrait: |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.iv.1.2 | Flourish. Then enter Theseus, victor, with Herald and | Florish. Then Enter Theseus (victor) the three Queenes meete him, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.iv.8 | With treble ceremony; rather than a gap | With treble Ceremonie, rather then a gap |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.iv.28.2 | Then like men use 'em. | Then like men use'em |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.iv.32 | Rather than niggard, waste; their lives concern us | Rather then niggard wast, their lives concerne us, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.iv.33 | Much more than Thebes is worth. Rather than have 'em | Much more then Thebs is worth, rather then have 'em |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.iv.37 | Prisoners to us then death. Bear 'em speedily | Prisoners to us, then death; Beare 'em speedily |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.i.5 | I am given out to be better lined than it can appear to | I am given out to be better lyn'd / Then it can appeare, to |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.i.10 | Sir, I demand no more than your own offer, and | Sir I demaund no more then your owne offer, / And |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.i.38 | their captivity than I of ruling Athens; they eat well, | their / Captivity, then I of ruling Athens: they eate / Well, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.i.66 | Like tall ships under sail; then start amongst 'em | Like tall Ships under saile: then start among'st 'em |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.i.167.1 | Better than we do, Arcite? | Better then we doe Arcite? |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.i.195 | Rude and impatient, then, like chastity, | Rude and impatient, then, like Chastity |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.i.207.2 | Well, agree then. | Well, agree then. |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.i.213.1 | You love her, then? | You love her then? |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.i.245.2 | Why then would you deal so cunningly, | Why then would you deale so cunningly, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.i.267 | Thou art baser in it than a cutpurse. | Thou art baser in it then a Cutpurse; |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.i.299.1 | And then I am sure she would love me. | And then I am sure she would love me: |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.i.309 | And if he lose her then, he's a cold coward. | And if he lose her then, he's a cold Coward; |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.i.325.2 | Then I am resolved, I will not go. | Then I am resolud, I will not goe. |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.i.326 | I must constrain you then; and for you are dangerous, | I must constraine you then: and for you are dangerous |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.ii.27 | Why, then, have with ye, boys; 'tis but a chiding. | Why then have with ye Boyes; Tis but a chiding, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.ii.55 | We'll see the sports, then every man to's tackle; | Weele see the sports, then every man to's Tackle: |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.ii.78 | Swifter than wind upon a field of corn, | Swifter, then winde upon a feild of Corne |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.iii.14 | To a young handsome man. Then I loved him, | To a yong hansom Man; Then I lov'd him, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.iii.23 | He bows his noble body, then salutes me, thus: | He bowes his noble body, then salutes me, thus: |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.iii.31 | To set him free? What says the law then? Thus much | To set him free? what saies the law then? Thus much |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.iv.9 | Sure is a happy sire, then. What proves you? | Sure is a happy Sire then: what prooves you? |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.iv.48 | I like him better, prince; I shall not then | I like him better (Prince) I shall not then |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.v.14 | Find me, and then condemn me for't, some wenches, | Finde me, and then condemne me for't; some wenches, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.v.36 | Will be all o'er the prison; I am then | Will be all ore the prison: I am then |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.i.5 | Fresher than May, sweeter | Fresher then May, sweeter |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.i.6 | Than her gold buttons on the boughs, or all | Then hir gold Buttons on the bowes, or all |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.i.68 | And then they fight like compelled bears, would fly | And then they fight like compelld Beares, would fly |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.i.74 | Of one meal lend me. Come before me then, | Of one meale lend me; Come before me then |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.i.78 | If then thou carry't; and brave souls in shades | If then thou carry't, and brave soules in shades |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.i.96.1 | More than my sword's edge on't. | More then my Swords edge ont. |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.i.118.2 | Nay, then – | Nay then. |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.ii.9 | I cannot hallow; if I whooped, what then? | I cannot hallow: if I whoop'd; what then? |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.ii.19 | And then they fed on him; so much for that. | And then they feed on him: So much for that, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.ii.20 | Be bold to ring the bell. How stand I then? | Be bold to ring the Bell; how stand I then? |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.iii.7 | I know you are faint; then I'll talk further with you. | I know you are faint, then ile talke further with you. |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.iii.13.2 | Pray sit down then, and let me entreat you, | Pray sit downe then, and let me entreate you |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.iii.23.2 | Yes, for them | Yes, for then |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.iii.46.2 | Then I'll leave you; | Then Ile leave you: |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.iv.13 | News from all parts o'th' world; then would I make | Newes from all parts o'th world, then would I make |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.v.10 | And ‘ Then let be,’ and no man understand me? | and then let be, and no man understand mee, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.v.16 | And then cries ‘ Rare!’, and I go forward; at length | and then cries rare, and I goe forward, at length |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.v.17 | I fling my cap up – mark there! – then do you, | I fling my Cap up; marke there; then do you |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.v.30 | And now and then a favour and a frisk. | And now and then a fauour, and a friske. |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.v.32.2 | Couple then, | Couple then |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.v.126 | That seek out silent hanging; then mine host | That seeke out silent hanging: Then mine Host |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.v.130 | Then the beest-eating clown, and next the fool, | Then the beast eating Clowne, and next the foole, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.24.2 | Then I shall quit you. | Then I shall quit you. |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.26 | More than a mistress to me; no more anger, | More then a Mistris to me, no more anger |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.29 | And both upon our guards, then let our fury, | And both upon our guards, then let our fury |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.31 | And then to whom the birthright of this beauty | And then to whom the birthright of this Beauty |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.50 | Then as I am an honest man and love, | Then as I am an honest man and love, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.52.2 | That's mine then. | That's mine then, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.89.1 | Stand off then. | Stand off then. |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.93 | They bow several ways, then advance and stand | They bow severall wayes: then advance and stand. |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.107 | They fight. Then horns sound within; they stand | Fight. Hornes within: they stand. |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.115 | For my contempt; then all the world will scorn us, | For my contempt; Then all the world will scorne us, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.125 | I fear less than my fortune. Know, weak cousin, | I feare lesse then my fortune: know weake Cosen |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.127.2 | Then come what can come, | Then come, what can come |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.156.1 | Then take my life; I'll woo thee to't. | Then take my life, Ile wooe thee too't. |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.157.1 | What more than man is this! | What more then man is this! |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.182 | More mercy than you found, sir, your offences | More mercy then you found, Sir, your offenses |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.183 | Being no more than his. None here speak for 'em; | Being no more then his: None here speake for 'em |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.201.2 | Nay, then I'll in too; | Nay then Ile in too: |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.218 | Safer than banishment; can these two live, | Safer then banishment: Can these two live |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.222 | In public question with their swords. Be wise then, | In publique question with their Swords; Be wise then |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.225 | Better they fall by th' law than one another. | Better they fall by 'th law, then one another. |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.258 | O all ye gods, despise me then. Thy banishment | O all ye gods dispise me then: Thy Banishment |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.264.2 | He's a villain, then. | H'es a villaine then. |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.281.1 | Must die then. | Must dye then. |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.285.2 | Make choice then. | Make choice then. |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.302.2 | Come, shake hands again then, | Come shake hands againe then, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.i.59 | A boy or woman. I then left my angle | A boy or woman. I then left my angle |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.i.63 | And listened to the words she sung, for then, | And listned to the words she song, for then |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.i.71 | And what shall I do then? I'll bring a bevy, | And what shall I doe then? Ile bring a beavy, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.i.76 | And beg his pardon.’ Then she talked of you, sir; | And beg his pardon; Then she talk'd of you Sir; |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.i.79 | And see the house made handsome. Then she sung | And see the house made handsome, then she sung |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.i.92 | And then she wept, and sung again, and sighed, | And then she wept, and sung againe, and sigh'd, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.i.119 | By no mean cross her; she is then distempered | By no meane crosse her, she is then distemperd |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.i.120.1 | Far worse than now she shows. | For worse then now she showes. |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.ii.21 | Smoother than Pelops' shoulder! Fame and honour, | Smoother then Pelops Shoulder? Fame and honour |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.ii.74 | Than these they have brought – if we judge by the outside – | Then these they have brought, (if we judge by the outside) |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.ii.94 | He's somewhat bigger than the knight he spoke of, | Hee's somewhat bigger, then the Knight he spoke of, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.ii.100 | And when he's angry, then a settled valour, | And when he's angry, then a setled valour |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.iii.2 | than at other some, is it not? | Then at other some, is it not? |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.iii.12 | ‘ down-a, down-a,’ and penned by no worse man than | downe / A downe a, and pend by no worse man, then |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.iii.15 | Dido see Palamon, and then will she be out of love with | Dido see Palamon, and Then will she be out of love with |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.iii.21 | or no ferry; then if it be your chance to come where the | Or no ferry: then if it be your chance to come where / The |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.iii.25 | pick flowers with Proserpine. Then will I make Palamon | picke flowers with Proserpine, then will I make / Palamon |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.iii.26 | a nosegay; then let him mark me – then – | a Nosegay, then let him marke me,---then. |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.iii.54 | then howls; th' other curses a suing fellow and her | then howles; th' other curses a suing fellow and her |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.iii.60 | Alas, what then? | Alas, what then? |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.iii.74 | seem to steal in than be permitted; take upon you, | seeme to steale in, then be permitted; take / Vpon you |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.i.24 | Though parcel of myself. Then from this gather | Though parcell of my selfe: Then from this gather |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.i.45 | The queen of flowers. Our intercession, then, | The Queene of Flowers: our intercession then |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.i.49.1 | They prostrate themselves, then kneel before the altar | They kneele. |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.i.72 | Victory too. Then blend your spirits with mine, | Victory too, then blend your spirits with mine, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.i.77.1 | Here they prostrate themselves, then kneel as formerly | Here they kneele as formerly. |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.i.91 | Addest flames hotter than his; the heavenly fires | Add'st flames, hotter then his the heavenly fyres |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.i.97 | Than lead itself, stings more than nettles. | Then Lead it selfe, stings more than Nettles; |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.i.126 | Truer than I. O then, most soft sweet goddess, | Truer then I. O then most soft sweet goddesse |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.i.130.2 | fall again upon their faces, then on their knees | fall againe upon their faces, then on their knees. |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.i.137.7 | aloof, she sets fire to it. Then they curtsy and kneel | a loofe, she sets fire to it, then they curtsey and kneele. |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.ii.8.2 | Then she told me | Then she told me |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.ii.12.4 | 'Twas very ill done, then; | Twas very ill done then, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.ii.21 | Cure her first this way, then if she will be honest, | Cure her first this way, then if shee will be honest, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.ii.84.2 | We'll to bed then. | Wee'l to bed then. |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.ii.106.1 | And then we'll play at cards. | And then weele play at Cardes. |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.ii.108.1 | And then we'll sleep together. | And then wee'l sleepe together. |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iii.3 | Than this decision. Every blow that falls | Then this decision ev'ry; blow that falls |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iii.6 | A bell than blade. I will stay here. | A Bell, then blade: I will stay here, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iii.34.2 | Well, well, then, at your pleasure. | Well, well then, at your pleasure, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iii.66.1 | Than minister to such harm! | Then minister to such harme, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iii.68 | Then he has won. 'Twas ever likely; | Then he has won: Twas ever likely, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iii.98 | No more be hid in him than fire in flax, | No more be hid in him, then fire in flax, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iii.99 | Than humble banks can go to law with waters | Then humble banckes can goe to law with waters, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iii.126 | Anon the other, then again the first, | Anon the other, then againe the first, |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iii.143 | A life more worthy from him than all women, | A life more worthy from him, then all women; |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iv.35.1 | Than I can quite or speak of. | Then I can quight or speake of. |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iv.48.2 | List then. Your cousin, | List then: your Cosen |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iv.56 | Did rather tell than trample, for the horse | Did rather tell, then trample; for the horse |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iv.71 | Than any jot obeys; seeks all foul means | Then any jot obaies; seekes all foule meanes |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iv.78 | That Arcite's legs, being higher than his head, | That Arcites leggs being higher then his head |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iv.80 | Even then fell off his head; and presently | Even then fell off his head: and presently |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iv.118 | Even then proclaimed your fancy; he restored her | Even then proclaimd your fancie: He restord her |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK epilogue.5 | Then it goes hard, I see. He that has | Then it goes hard I see; He that has |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK epilogue.6 | Loved a young handsome wench, then, show his face – | Lov'd a yong hansome wench then, show his face: |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK epilogue.10 | Have at the worst can come, then! Now, what say ye? | Have at the worst can come, then; Now what say ye? |
The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK prologue.21 | Than Robin Hood!’ This is the fear we bring; | Then Robin Hood? This is the feare we bring; |
The Winter's Tale | WT I.i.23 | and there rooted betwixt them then such an affection, | and there rooted betwixt them then such an affection, |
The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.16.1 | Than you can put us to't. | Then you can put vs to't. |
The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.18 | We'll part the time between's then; and in that | Wee'le part the time betweene's then: and in that |
The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.35 | But let him say so, then, and let him go; | But let him say so then, and let him goe; |
The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.56.2 | Your guest, then, madam: | Your Guest then, Madame: |
The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.59.1 | Than you to punish. | Then you to punish. |
The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.599.2 | Not your gaoler, then, | Not your Gaoler then, |
The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.62.1 | You were pretty lordings then? | You were pretty Lordings then? |
The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.77 | Temptations have since then been born to's: for | Temptations haue since then been borne to's: for |
The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.79 | Your precious self had then not crossed the eyes | Your precious selfe had then not cross'd the eyes |
The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.104 | And clap thyself my love: then didst thou utter | A clap thy selfe, my Loue; then didst thou vtter, |
The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.117 | As in a looking-glass; and then to sigh, as 'twere | As in a Looking-Glasse; and then to sigh, as 'twere |
The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.142 | And fellow'st nothing. Then 'tis very credent | And fellow'st nothing. Then 'tis very credent, |
The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.159 | How like, methought, I then was to this kernel, | How like (me thought) I then was to this Kernell, |
The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.167 | Now my sworn friend, and then mine enemy; | Now my sworne Friend, and then mine Enemy; |
The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.225 | More than the common blocks. Not noted, is't, | More then the common Blocks. Not noted, is't, |
The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.266 | By its own visage; if I then deny it, | By it's owne visage; if I then deny it, |
The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.269 | Is thicker than a cuckold's horn – or heard – | Is thicker then a Cuckolds Horne) or heard? |
The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.275 | To have nor eyes, nor ears, nor thought – then say | To haue nor Eyes, nor Eares, nor Thought, then say |
The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.283 | Than this; which to reiterate were sin | Then this; which to reiterate, were sin |
The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.293 | Why, then the world and all that's in't is nothing; | Why then the World, and all that's in't, is nothing, |
The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.343 | Go then; and, with a countenance as clear | Goe then; and with a countenance as cleare |
The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.393 | Our gentry than our parents' noble names, | Our Gentry, then our Parents Noble Names, |
The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.417.2 | O, then my best blood turn | Oh then, my best blood turne |
The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.420 | Turn then my freshest reputation to | Turne then my freshest Reputation to |
The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.423 | Nay, hated too, worse than the great'st infection | Nay hated too, worse then the great'st Infection |
The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.433 | Avoid what's grown than question how 'tis born. | Auoid what's growne, then question how 'tis borne. |
The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.445 | Than one condemned by the King's own mouth, thereon | Then one condemnd by the Kings owne mouth: / Thereon |
The Winter's Tale | WT II.i.18 | One of these days; and then you'd wanton with us, | One of these dayes, and then youl'd wanton with vs, |
The Winter's Tale | WT II.i.29.2 | Nay, come sit down; then on. | Nay, come sit downe: then on. |
The Winter's Tale | WT II.i.31.2 | Come on, then, | Come on then, |
The Winter's Tale | WT II.i.54 | Which often hath no less prevailed than so | Which often hath no lesse preuail'd, then so, |
The Winter's Tale | WT II.i.99 | You scarce can right me throughly then to say | You scarce can right me throughly, then, to say |
The Winter's Tale | WT II.i.112 | Worse than tears drown. Beseech you all, my lords, | Worse then Teares drowne: 'beseech you all (my Lords) |
The Winter's Tale | WT II.i.120 | Has deserved prison, then abound in tears | Ha's deseru'd Prison, then abound in Teares, |
The Winter's Tale | WT II.i.136 | Than when I feel and see her no farther trust her: | Then when I feele, and see her, no farther trust her: |
The Winter's Tale | WT II.i.149 | And I had rather glib myself than they | And I had rather glib my selfe, then they |
The Winter's Tale | WT II.i.158 | I had rather you did lack than I, my lord, | I had rather you did lacke then I (my Lord) |
The Winter's Tale | WT II.i.160 | To have her honour true than your suspicion, | To haue her Honor true, then your suspition |
The Winter's Tale | WT II.i.190 | Than what I know, yet shall the oracle | Then what I know, yet shall the Oracle |
The Winter's Tale | WT II.ii.3.1 | What dost thou then in prison? | What dost thou then in prison? |
The Winter's Tale | WT II.ii.6.2 | Pray you, then, | Pray you then, |
The Winter's Tale | WT II.iii.29 | Than the Queen's life? A gracious, innocent soul, | Then the Queenes life? A gracious innocent soule, |
The Winter's Tale | WT II.iii.30.1 | More free than he is jealous. | More free, then he is iealous. |
The Winter's Tale | WT II.iii.57 | Than such as most seem yours – I say, I come | Then such as most seeme yours. I say, I come |
The Winter's Tale | WT II.iii.71 | Than you are mad; which is enough, I'll warrant, | Then you are mad: which is enough, Ile warrant |
The Winter's Tale | WT II.iii.80 | So I would you did: then 'twere past all doubt | So I would you did: then 'twere past all dout |
The Winter's Tale | WT II.iii.86 | Whose sting is sharper than the sword's; and will not – | Whose sting is sharper then the Swords; and will not |
The Winter's Tale | WT II.iii.118 | Than your own weak-hinged fancy – something savours | Then your owne weake-hindg'd Fancy) something sauors |
The Winter's Tale | WT II.iii.156 | Than curse it then. But be it: let it live. | Then curse it then. But be it: let it liue. |
The Winter's Tale | WT II.iii.189 | In more than this deed does require! And blessing | In more then this deed do's require; and Blessing |
The Winter's Tale | WT III.i.21 | Even then will rush to knowledge. Go: fresh horses! | Euen then will rush to knowledge. Goe: fresh Horses, |
The Winter's Tale | WT III.ii.29 | I doubt not then but innocence shall make | I doubt not then, but Innocence shall make |
The Winter's Tale | WT III.ii.35 | Than history can pattern, though devised | Then Historie can patterne, though deuis'd, |
The Winter's Tale | WT III.ii.56.1 | Than to perform it first. | Then to performe it first. |
The Winter's Tale | WT III.ii.58.2 | More than mistress of | More then Mistresse of, |
The Winter's Tale | WT III.ii.75 | Wotting no more than I, are ignorant. | (Wotting no more then I) are ignorant. |
The Winter's Tale | WT III.ii.85 | Which to deny concerns more than avails; for as | Which to deny, concernes more then auailes: for as |
The Winter's Tale | WT III.ii.88 | More criminal in thee than it – so thou | More criminall in thee, then it) so thou |
The Winter's Tale | WT III.ii.90.1 | Look for no less than death. | Looke for no lesse then death. |
The Winter's Tale | WT III.ii.127 | Of great Apollo's priest; and that since then | Of great Apollo's Priest; and that since then, |
The Winter's Tale | WT III.ii.168 | No richer than his honour. How he glisters | No richer then his Honor: How he glisters |
The Winter's Tale | WT III.ii.181 | And then run mad indeed, stark mad! For all | And then run mad indeed: starke-mad: for all |
The Winter's Tale | WT III.ii.207 | Than all thy woes can stir. Therefore betake thee | Then all thy woes can stirre: therefore betake thee |
The Winter's Tale | WT III.ii.232 | Than to be pitied of thee. Prithee, bring me | Then to be pittied of thee. Prethee bring me |
The Winter's Tale | WT III.iii.1 | Thou art perfect, then, our ship hath touched upon | Thou art perfect then, our ship hath toucht vpon |
The Winter's Tale | WT III.iii.65 | which I fear the wolf will sooner find than the master. If | which I feare the Wolfe will sooner finde then the Maister; if |
The Winter's Tale | WT III.iii.73 | behind-door-work. They were warmer that got this than | behinde-doore worke: they were warmer that got this, then |
The Winter's Tale | WT III.iii.92 | And then for the land-service: to see how the bear tore | And then for the Land-seruice, to see how the Beare tore |
The Winter's Tale | WT III.iii.98 | mocked him, both roaring louder than the sea or weather. | mock'd him, both roaring lowder then the sea, or weather. |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.ii.13 | have had thee than thus to want thee. Thou, having | haue had thee, then thus to want thee, thou hauing |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.ii.26 | are no less unhappy, their issue not being gracious, than | are no lesse vnhappy, their issue, not being gracious, then |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.ii.32 | court, and is less frequent to his princely exercises than | Court, and is lesse frequent to his Princely exercises then |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.ii.43 | more than can be thought to begin from such a cottage. | more, then can be thought to begin from such a cottage |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iii.3 | Why, then comes in the sweet o'the year, | Why then comes in the sweet o'the yeere, |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iii.18 | I then do most go right. | I then do most go right. |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iii.21 | Then my account I well may give, | Then my account I well may giue, |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iii.52 | rags; and then, death, death! | ragges: and then, death, death. |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iii.54 | to lay on thee, rather than have these off. | to lay on thee, rather then haue these off. |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iii.56 | more than the stripes I have received, which are mighty | more then the stripes I haue receiued, which are mightie |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iii.92 | He hath been since an ape-bearer; then a process-server, | he hath bene since an Ape-bearer, then a Processe-seruer |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iii.93 | a bailiff; then he compassed a motion of the Prodigal | (a Bayliffe) then hee compast a Motion of the Prodigall |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iii.108 | Sweet sir, much better than I was: I can | Sweet sir, much better then I was: I can |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iii.113 | Then fare thee well. I must go buy spices for our | Then fartheewell, I must go buy Spices for our |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.35.1 | Burn hotter than my faith. | Burne hotter then my Faith. |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.39 | Which then will speak: that you must change this purpose | Which then will speake, that you must change this purpose, |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.98 | Then make your garden rich in gillyvors, | Then make you Garden rich in Gilly' vors, |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.101 | No more than, were I painted, I would wish | No more then were I painted, I would wish |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.121 | But sweeter than the lids of Juno's eyes | But sweeter then the lids of Iuno's eyes, |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.158 | But smacks of something greater than herself, | But smackes of something greater then her selfe, |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.186 | several tunes faster than you'll tell money; he utters | seuerall Tunes, faster then you'l tell money: hee vtters |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.207 | points more than all the lawyers in Bohemia can | Points, more then all the Lawyers in Bohemia, can |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.218 | than you'd think, sister. | then youl'd thinke (Sister.) |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.237 | He hath promised you more than that, or there | He hath promis'd you more then that, or there |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.259 | for then we are sure they are true. | for then we are sure they are true. |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.282 | than my pack will hold. | then my packe will hold. |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.306 | Then whither go'st? Say, whither? | Then whether goest? Say whether? |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.368 | Than he, and men; the earth, the heavens, and all: | Then he, and men: the earth, the heauens, and all; |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.372 | More than was ever man's, I would not prize them | More then was euer mans, I would not prize them |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.385 | I shall have more than you can dream of yet; | I shall haue more then you can dreame of yet, |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.386 | Enough then for your wonder. But come on: | Enough then for your wonder: but come-on, |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.401.1 | Than most have of his age. | Then most haue of his age. |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.423 | More homely than thy state. – For thee, fond boy, | More homely then thy state. For thee (fond boy) |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.428 | Far than Deucalion off. Mark thou my words! | Farre then Deucalion off: (marke thou my words) |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.468 | Then till the fury of his highness settle | Then till the fury of his Highnesse settle |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.474 | The violation of my faith; and then | The violation of my faith, and then |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.532 | That I may call thee something more than man, | That I may call thee something more then man, |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.538.2 | Then list to me. | Then list to me: |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.551.1 | Faster than thought or time. | Faster then Thought, or Time. |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.563 | Than a wild dedication of yourselves | Then a wild dedication of your selues |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.687 | Go to, then. | Goe too then. |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.699 | could have been to him; and then your blood had been | could haue beene to him, and then your Blood had beene |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.780 | then, 'nointed over with honey, set on the head of a | then 'noynted ouer with Honey, set on the head of a |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.781 | wasp's nest; then stand till he be three-quarters and a | Waspes Nest, then stand till he be three quarters and a |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.782 | dram dead; then recovered again with aqua-vitae or | dram dead: then recouer'd againe with Aquavite, or |
The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.783 | some other hot infusion; then, raw as he is, and in the | some other hot Infusion: then, raw as he is (and in the |
The Winter's Tale | WT V.i.4 | More penitence than done trespass. At the last, | More penitence, then done trespas: At the last |
The Winter's Tale | WT V.i.30 | Than to rejoice the former queen is well? | Then to reioyce the former Queene is well? |
The Winter's Tale | WT V.i.31 | What holier than, for royalty's repair, | What holyer, then for Royalties repayre, |
The Winter's Tale | WT V.i.52 | Had squared me to thy counsel! Then even now | Had squar'd me to thy councell: then, euen now, |
The Winter's Tale | WT V.i.65 | You chose her; then I'd shriek, that even your ears | You chose her: then Il'd shrieke, that euen your eares |
The Winter's Tale | WT V.i.72 | Then, good my lords, bear witness to his oath. | Then good my Lords, beare witnesse to his Oath. |
The Winter's Tale | WT V.i.84 | Never till then. | Neuer till then. |
The Winter's Tale | WT V.i.100 | Is colder than that theme – she had not been, | Is colder then that Theame: she had not beene, |
The Winter's Tale | WT V.i.111 | More worth than any man; men that she is | More worth then any Man: Men, that she is |
The Winter's Tale | WT V.i.133 | You, gracious couple, do. And then I lost – | You (gracious Couple) doe: and then I lost |
The Winter's Tale | WT V.i.145 | He bade me say so – more than all the sceptres | (He bad me say so) more then all the Scepters, |
The Winter's Tale | WT V.i.219 | Than I do now. With thought of such affections | Then I doe now: with thought of such Affections, |
The Winter's Tale | WT V.i.226.1 | Than what you look on now. | Then what you looke on now. |
The Winter's Tale | WT V.ii.41 | Then have you lost a sight which | Then haue you lost a Sight which |
The Winter's Tale | WT V.ii.50 | become a loss cries ‘ O, thy mother, thy mother!’; then | become a Losse, cryes, Oh, thy Mother, thy Mother: then |
The Winter's Tale | WT V.ii.51 | asks Bohemia forgiveness; then embraces his son-in-law; | askes Bohemia forgiuenesse, then embraces his Sonne-in-Law: |
The Winter's Tale | WT V.ii.52 | then again worries he his daughter with clipping | then againe worryes he his Daughter, with clipping |
The Winter's Tale | WT V.ii.70 | even then lost when it was found. But O, the noble | euen then lost, when it was found. But oh the Noble |
The Winter's Tale | WT V.ii.116 | then took her to be – who began to be much sea-sick, | then tooke her to be) who began to be much Sea-sick, |
The Winter's Tale | WT V.ii.137 | called me brother; and then the two kings called my | call'd mee Brother: and then the two Kings call'd my |
The Winter's Tale | WT V.ii.138 | father brother; and then the Prince my brother and the | Father Brother: and then the Prince (my Brother) and the |
The Winter's Tale | WT V.iii.38 | For being more stone than it? O royal piece! | For being more Stone then it? Oh Royall Peece: |
The Winter's Tale | WT V.iii.44 | I kneel and then implore her blessing. Lady, | I kneele, and then implore her Blessing. Lady, |
The Winter's Tale | WT V.iii.89 | And take you by the hand: but then you'll think – | And take you by the hand: but then you'le thinke |
The Winter's Tale | WT V.iii.95 | You do awake your faith. Then all stand still; | You doe awake your Faith: then, all stand still: |
The Winter's Tale | WT V.iii.106 | Until you see her die again, for then | Vntill you see her dye againe; for then |